The Project Gutenberg EBook of Armenia and the Armenians, by Ida A. Pratt This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook. Title: Armenia and the Armenians A List of References in the New York Public Library Author: Ida A. Pratt Release Date: June 19, 2016 [EBook #52371] Language: English Character set encoding: ASCII *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ARMENIA AND THE ARMENIANS *** Produced by Jeroen Hellingman and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net/ for Project Gutenberg (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.) ARMENIA AND THE ARMENIANS A LIST OF REFERENCES IN THE NEW YORK PUBLIC LIBRARY COMPILED BY IDA A. PRATT UNDER THE DIRECTION OF RICHARD GOTTHEIL, Ph.D. NEW YORK 1919 NOTE This list contains titles of works in The New York Public Library on March 1, 1919. The books and articles mentioned are in the Reference Department, in the Central Building of the Library at Fifth Avenue and Forty-second Street. REPRINTED. WITH ADDITIONS. OCTOBER 1919 FROM THE BULLETIN OF THE NEW YORK PUBLIC LIBRARY OF MARCH-MAY 1919 PRINTED AT THE NEW YORK PUBLIC LIBRARY form p-126 [x-23-19 3c] TABLE OF CONTENTS PAGE Prefatory Note 1 Bibliography 5 Periodicals 7 Description and Geography 7 Archaeology 18 Numismatics 20 Art 20 History 21 General Works 21 Massacres 36 Works in Armenian Relating to Other Countries 40 Biography 41 Social Life 42 Economics and Industries 43 Folklore and Mythology 44 Law 45 Science 45 Geology and Natural History 46 Language 47 Inscriptions 53 History of Literature 56 Literature 57 Poetry 57 Fiction and Drama 59 Other Literature 62 Translations from European Languages 65 Armenian Church 68 Mechitharists 72 Missions 72 Armenian Question 73 Armenians in Other Countries 78 Index 81 ARMENIA AND THE ARMENIANS A LIST OF REFERENCES PREFATORY NOTE By Richard Gottheil, Ph.D. Chief of the Oriental Division Few people have been the subject of so much pity and commiseration as have the Armenians. And few have deserved such pity as fully as have they. A remarkable race, they have had an uncommon history. They have always written and spoken an Indo-European language, one that belongs to that large number of which the Sanskrit is an early and prominent representative. According to their traditions, they are also of Indo-European race; though evidently intermixed with Semitic and other blood. Historically, they come to our notice at first in ancient Phrygia; and, peculiarly enough, seem to have reversed the general order and to have travelled towards the rising sun instead of towards the west. The Empire of the Hittites was breaking up, and the Armenians appear to have settled in the upper reaches of the Euphrates, to have extended their quarters into the region of Lakes Van and Urmia and to have made their home around Mt. Ararat. Unfortunately, the Armenians were never able to hold out long as an independent kingdom. In antiquity the greater Powers of Greece, of Seleucid Syria, of Persia and of Rome were at hand, ready to prevent the assertion of any rights that might controvert their own. At one time, it is true, that which historians call Armenia Major and Armenia Minor--the Caucasus regions south of the mountains and north of Mesopotamia--were ruled by independent kings, especially under Tigranes II, termed the Great (94-56 B. C.), who extended his power to take in a good deal of the former kingdom of Assyria, the northwest corner of Persia, the province of Azerbaijan, a territory said to have covered some 500,000 square miles and to have contained some 3,000,000 inhabitants. His royal city was called after his own name--Tigranocerta; and it is sufficient to record Cicero's saying that "Tigranes made the Republic of Rome tremble before his powers." But Rome's watchful eye was envious of such power, and under Lucullus, in 69 B. C., Armenian independence was put down--not to be raised again for many centuries. At a later date she became the playball between Byzantium and Persia, who in their continued strife swarmed up and down her land carrying destruction in their wake. Weakened as she thus was, she was in no condition to withstand the onslaughts made upon her by the Arab hordes that swarmed up through northern Mesopotamia in 636 A.D. But, withal, her people held firmly to their heritage. From time to time attempts at freedom were made and independent kings ruled for a nonce and after a fashion. Vartan did this in from 571 until 578 under the Byzantines. Ashot I was semi-independent in 885 under the auspices of Arab overlords. But such attempts as these were not productive of good. They opened the way for internal strife and for the entry of those Tartar hordes in the eleventh century that were destined finally to overrun the whole country. Here again the tenacity of the Armenians told its tale. Small independent kingdoms were established at Ani, in Georgia and near Lake Van. But the coming of Toghril Beg soon ended their existence. In 1071, the Turks drove the Byzantines out of Armenia and began that series of depredations and plunder through which they have made their name infamous. In 1239, Jenghiz Khan was there; and when the Turks were at rest, the Kurds were ready to supplement their work. An exodus was begun, the first of many the Armenians have had to suffer during their long and tragic history. Multitudes were driven out of the country into Poland, into Moldavia and Galicia,--even around the north of the Caspian Sea, where in Lemberg, an important colony was founded. Some wandered to the South and founded settlements in the mountains of Cilicia which were able to exist for some 300 years, although they were looked at askance by Byzantium because of their peculiar church government. In 1375, the country was conquered by the Ottomans; but so strong is the desire of the Armenians for freedom that a small body of them withdrew into the recesses of the Taurus mountains and refused--with success--down to the present day, to pay taxes to the government at Constantinople. The Armenians were overrun by Tamerlane in 1401, by the Sultan Selim I in 1514, by the Persians in 1575 and 1639. It was therefore natural that, when the Russian armies came upon the scene and offered to release the Christian peoples from the yoke of the Turk they were received with joy. Etchmiadzin, which for a time had been Persian, became Russian by the treaty of Turkman-Chai in 1828. Whatever fault we may in truth find with the manner in which the former Russian government treated its subject peoples, very little can be said against its method of dealing with the Armenians. It is true that a strong attempt at Russification was commenced during the closing years of the nineteenth century. This went so far that in 1898, under the governorship of Prince Galitzin, many Armenian schools were taken over, and in 1903 much Armenian church property was condemned. But nothing was done to disturb the daily life of the Armenians who grew numerous and flourished in that part of the Caucasus that was under Russian surveillance. The Plain of Erivan and the Valley of the Araxes River are their chief residing places. Here, though in close contact with Tartars, Lazes and Kurds, they have preserved their separate existence, and have cherished with ardor the details of their older life. Etchmiadzin was originally a religious settlement--a monastery encircled by high battlements. But for the Armenians it is not only a religious center. It is more than this. It has become a national rallying point towards which all Armenians look with a peculiar attachment and affection. One would have imagined that such tenacity in holding on to what they considered to be the truth would have received the recognition it deserved on the part of the leading political forces in Europe. But that was asking too much. The lot of the Armenians who were under Turkish overlordship gradually grew worse. It is true that the Draft Treaty of San Stefano called for "improvements and reforms demanded by local requirements in the provinces inhabited by Armenians," and guaranteed "their security from Kurds and Circassians." But the final Berlin Treaty of 1878 had whittled this down to a simple promise of reform "for the protection of Christian and other subjects of the Porte." This meant, of course, that nothing was to be done. Turkey was astute enough to know this; and the great arbiter of fate in the Europe of his time, Bismarck, had said openly that the Germans had no care for Armenian reforms. Soon the massacres commenced that unfortunately carried the tale of Armenian sufferings all over the world. Beginning at Mush, in 1893, they have lasted with more or less continuity down to our own day. Unfortunately, such place-names as Erzerum (1895) and Adana (1909) are too familiar to our ears. The hope was felt and openly expressed that the coming of the Young Turk would bring a change in the treatment of the Armenians; but Enver, Talaat, and Djavid have certainly done their best to prove that though the Turk may change from "old" to "young" he still remains a Turk. "The first phase of Ottoman policy towards subject peoples was neglect; the Hamidian was attrition; but the Young Turkish phase is extermination." The report presented in 1916 by Viscount Bryce on "The Treatment of the Armenians in the Ottoman Empire," is the severest indictment that could be presented against a people and against their political backers. From 800,000 to 1,000,000 of these Armenians are said, on reliable authority, to have perished. At an early date the Armenians accepted Christianity. They themselves believe that the new faith was preached to them by the apostles Thaddai and Bartholomew. But it was not until the year 301 that Gregory the Illuminator persuaded their king Tiridates officially to accept Christianity for the state and the people as a whole. And just as they have preserved their national identity, so they have kept themselves apart as a church--called the "Gregorian," after the saint mentioned above. They followed the decisions of the Council of Nicea (325) of Constantinople (381) and of Ephesus (381), but refused to regard the Council of Chalcedon as legally convened; and at a synod of their own, composed of Armenian and Georgian bishops, held at Driune in 506, the Armenians definitely wedded themselves to the Council of Ephesus and the theological doctrines propounded there. The Armenian Church stands thus, in no connection either with the Greek or the Roman Church. In the 18th century, it is true, a certain bishop Mekhitar, of Sebaste, joined the Roman Hierarchy and established at Venice the Mekitarist Monastery that has done some excellent literary and educational work, and that in Turkey a Kotolik Milleti (Catholic Nation), was established in 1835, through Roman influence. But neither have any connection with the Armenian Church as such. The Oriental character of this church may be seen from the fact that its weekly day of rest lasts from Saturday sun-down up to Sunday evening. At an equally early date the Armenians showed a taste for literary expression, and so eager are they for education that in the year 1902, and under all the circumstances of Turkish oppression, they had no less than 1,200 Armenian schools in the Ottoman empire, giving instruction to 130,000 pupils. Their script is said to have come to them from a certain Syrian Daniel and to have been enlarged and perfected by their own Saint Mesrob in 410, who added the vowel signs after the manner of the Greek system. It was to this same Mesrob, assisted by Sahak (Isaac; 387-439), to whom the Armenians owe the translation of both the Old and New Testament into their tongue. Much of the older literature is composed of translations from Greek and from Syriac authors, but, in a certain sense, a national literature was growing up--though, as was natural, it was largely theological in character. Yet valuable historical works were written by Moses of Khorene, by Mesrob, and in the twelfth century, by Nerses Shnorhali. Some poetry has also been written, though this, too, is chiefly of a religious turn. Printing in Armenia was introduced by the Patriarch Mikhael of Sebaste (1542-1570) though some years prior to this--in 1512--a press that used Armenian type had been set up in Venice. The first Armenian book to be printed in England dates from the year 1736; the first to be put out in Russia from 1771; but it was not until 1857 that an Armenian book left the press in America. In quite modern times large quantities of Armenian literature have been published dealing with a great variety of topics. Wherever they are, the Armenians are in the forefront of those who work and strive; they have large capacity and when they will once again be settled in their ancient home in Asia Minor and in northern Mesopotamia, to which 500,000 are ready to return at a moment's notice, we shall look forward to a development that will be as remarkable as it will be thorough. Prior to the calamities of this war, Armenian historians reckoned the number of their fellow-racials to be 4,160,000--of whom 2,380,000 were in the Turkish empire. The following list deals with the various subjects to which reference has been made in these pages. Whatever excellence it has is due to the care and vigilance of Miss Pratt. I am also beholden to Mr. V. H. Kalendarian for the help he has given in verifying the transliteration of the Armenian titles. LIST OF WORKS ON ARMENIA AND THE ARMENIANS ORDER OF ARRANGEMENT Bibliography. Periodicals. Description and Geography. Archaeology. Numismatics. Art. History: General Works. Massacres. Works in Armenian Relating to Other Countries. Biography. Social Life. Economics and Industries. Folklore and Mythology. Law. Science. Geology and Natural History. Language. Inscriptions. History of Literature. Literature: Poetry. Fiction and Drama. Other Literature. Translations from European Languages. Armenian Church. Mechitharists. Missions. Armenian Question. Armenians in Other Countries. BIBLIOGRAPHY Alishanian, Gheuont. Table bibliographique. (In his: Sissouan. Venise, 1899. f deg.. p. 533-535.) †*ONK Aucher, G. Bollettino: Armeno. (Rivista degli studi orientali. Roma, 1907-12. 8 deg.. v. 1. p. 514-528; v. 2, p. 636-650; v. 3, p. 687-718; v. 4, p. 801-861.) *OAA Baronian, Sukias. See Bodleian Library, Oxford University. Basmadjian, K. J. La presse armenienne en Turquie. (Revue du monde musulman. Paris, 1908. 8 deg.. tome 4, p. 196-201.) *OAA Bibliotheca Hagiographica Orientalis; ediderunt Socii Bollandiani. Bruxellis: apud editores, 1910. xxiii, 287 p. 4 deg.. (Subsidia Hagiographica. [v.] 10.) *OAB Bibliotheque nationale, Paris. Catalogue des manuscrits armeniens et georgiens de la Bibliotheque nationale par Frederic Macler. Paris: E. Leroux, 1908. xxx, 203 p., 1 l., 5 facs. 8 deg.. *OAB Blackwell, Alice Stone. Bibliography. (In her: Armenian poems. Boston, 1917. 12 deg.. p. 290-291.) *ONP Bodleian Library, Oxford University. Catalogue of the Armenian manuscripts in the Bodleian Library by the Rev. Sukias Baronian and F. C. Conybeare. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1918. viii p., 254 col., 6 l. f deg.. (Catalogi codd. mss. Bibliothecae Bodleianae pars xiv.) †*OAB British Museum.--Department of Oriental Printed Books and Manuscripts. A catalogue of the Armenian manuscripts in the British Museum, by Frederick Cornwallis Conybeare ... To which is appended a catalogue of Georgian manuscripts in the British Museum, by J. Oliver Wardrop ... London: the trustees, 1913. viii p., 2 l., 410 p., 1 l. f deg.. †*OAB Brosset, Marie Felicite. Activite litteraire des Georgiens et des Armeniens, en Russie, en Transcaucasie et en Crimee. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1863-66. f deg.. tome 5, col. 393-395; tome 7, col. 45-48; tome 8, col. 549-561; tome 10, col. 390-392.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863-68. tome 4, p. 667-670; tome 5, p. 59-64, 351-368, 529-532, *OAA. Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis. See Bodleian Library, Oxford University; also British Museum.--Department of Oriental Printed Books and Manuscripts. Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Armenisch. (In: Katalog der Bibliothek. Leipzig, 1900. 8 deg.. Bd. 1, p. 369-379.) *OAB Dwight, Harrison Gray Otis. Catalogue of all works known to exist in the Armenian language, of a date earlier than the seventeenth century. (American Oriental Society. Journal. New York, 1853. 8 deg.. v. 3, p. 241-288.) *OAA Finck, Franz Nikolaus. Katalog der armenischen Handschriften des Herrn Abgar Joannissiany zu Tiflis. Leipzig: N. Kapamadjian, 1903. xxiii, 260 p. 8 deg.. *ONK Imprimerie armenienne de Saint-Lazare. Catalogue des livres de l'Imprimerie armenienne de Saint-Lazare. Venise: Institut des Mekhitharistes, 1894. 112 p. 12 deg.. *ONK p.v.1 ---- Tzoutzag krots. [Catalogue of books.] 1716-1899. Venise: Institut des Mekhitharistes, 1899. 1 p.l., 102 p. 12 deg.. *ONK p.v.1 ---- ---- 1716-1903. Venise: Institut des Mekhitharistes, 1903. 2 p.l., 73 p. 12 deg.. *ONK p.v.1 Kalemkiar, Gregoris. Eine Skizze der literarisch-typographischen Thaetigkeit der Mechitharisten-Congregation in Wien aus Anlass des 50jaehrigen Regierungs-Jubilaeums ... Kaiser Franz Joseph I. Wien: Mechitharisten-Congregations-Buchdruckerei, 1898. 4 p.l., 99 p. 8 deg.. *GD Karamianz, N. Verzeichniss der armenischen Handschriften der Koeniglichen Bibliothek zu Berlin. Berlin: A. Asher & Co., 1888. viii, 88 p., 5 facs. f deg.. (Koenigliche Bibliothek zu Berlin. Die Handschriften-Verzeichnisse. Bd. 10.) ††*OAB Karekin, Paul. Bibliographie armenienne. Haigagan madenakidutiun. Venice, 1883. 32, 734 p. 12 deg.. *ONK Langlois, Victor. Les journaux chez les Armeniens. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1863. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 15, p. 256-271.) *OAA Lynch, H. F. B. Bibliography. (In his: Armenia. London, 1901. 8 deg.. v. 2. p. 471-496.) *R-BBY Macler, Frederic. Indications bibliographiques. (In his: Autour de l'Armenie. Paris, 1917. 12 deg.. p. iii-xvi.) BBX ---- Notices de manuscrits armeniens vus dans quelques bibliotheques de l'Europe centrale. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1913. 8 deg.. serie 11, v. 2, p. 229-284, 559-686.) *OAA ---- Rapport sur une mission scientifique en Armenie russe et en Armenie turque, juillet-octobre 1909. Paris: Imprimerie nationale, 1910. 135 p., 16 pl. 8 deg.. (France.--Ministere de l'Instruction Publique et des Beaux-Arts. Nouvelles archives des missions scientifiques et litteraires. nouvelle serie, fasc. 2.) *EN ---- See also Bibliotheque nationale, Paris. Mordtmann, J. H. Armenische Drucke von Smyrna und Constantinopel. Zusammengestellt von J. H. Mordtmann. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Wissenschaftlicher Jahresbericht... Leipzig, 1883. 8 deg.. 1880, p. 57-58.) *OAA Mueller, Friedrich. Die armenischen Handschriften des Klosters von Aryni (Arghana). [Wien, 1896.] 14 p. 8 deg.. *ONK Repr.: Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte, Philos.-hist. Cl. Bd. 134, Abhandl. 4. *EF. ---- Die armenischen Handschriften von Sewast (Siwas) und Senqus. [Wien. 1897.] 13 p. 8 deg.. *ONK Repr.: Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte, Philos.-hist. Cl. Bd. 135, Abhandl. 6, *EF. Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich. Catalogue de la litterature armenienne, depuis le commencement du IV. siecle jusque vers le milieu de XVII. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1860. f deg.. tome 2, col. 49-91.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863. tome 4, p. 75-134, *OAA. ---- Bibliograficheskii ocherk armianskoi istoricheskoi literatury. (Travaux de la troisieme session du Congres international des Orientalistes. St. Petersbourg, 1879-80. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 455-511.) *OAA A bibliography of Armenian historical literature. Petermann, Julius Heinrich. Litteratura armeniaca. (In his: Brevis linguae Armeniacae grammatica. Carolsruhae, 1872. 12 deg.. p. 100-111.) *OAC Richardson, Ernest Cushing. Armenia. (In his: An alphabetical subject index ... to periodical articles on religion. New York [cop. 1907]. 8 deg.. p. 48-50.) *R-ZA and *P Rockwell, William Walker. Armenia. A list of books and articles with annotations by W. W. Rockwell. New York: American Committee for Armenian and Syrian Relief, 1916. 8 p. 12 deg.. *ONK Salemann, C. Armenien. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Wissenschaftlicher Jahresbericht ... von October, 1876 bis December, 1877. Leipzig, 1879. 8 deg.. Heft 2, p. 20-26.) *OAA Sarghissian, Basile. Grand catalogue des manuscrits armeniens de la Bibliotheque des PP. Mekhitharistes de Saint-Lazare. v. 1. Venise, 1914. f deg.. †*ONK Title from cover. Armenian title-page. The Schrumpf collection of Armenian books. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1893. 8 deg.. 1893, p. 699-716.) *OAA Streck, Maximilian. Armenia. Bibliography. (In: Encyclopaedia of Islam. Leyden, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 1, p. 446-449.) †*OGC Wardrop, J. Oliver. See British Museum.--Department of Oriental Printed Books and Manuscripts. PERIODICALS Ararat. A searchlight on Armenia, v. 1, no. 1-2, 4-12; v. 2-v. 6, no. 61 (July, Aug., Oct., 1913-Nov., 1918). London, 1913-18. 8 deg.. *ONK Armenia. See New Armenia. The Armenian herald. Published by the Armenian National Union of America, v. 1-date (Dec, 1917-date). Boston, 1917-date. 8 deg.. *ONK Armenian Relief Association. Bulletin, no. 1-2. New York, 1895. 8 deg.. SHT Asbarez. The Arena. An Armenian weekly, v. 9, no. 439-date (Jan. 5, 1917-date). Fresno, Cal., 1917-date. f deg.. ††*ONK The Azad, an Armenian semi-monthly periodical, v. 1, no. 1-18 (Jan. 1-Nov. 15, 1918). New York, 1918. f deg.. †*ONK Azk. The Nation, v. 6, no. 15-date (Sept. 25, 1912-date). Boston, 1912-date. f deg.. ††*ONK Banaser. Revue litteraire & scientifique publiee sous la direction de K. J. Basmadjian. v. 1-9, no. 3. Paris, 1899-1907. 8 deg.. *ONK Basmadjian, K. J., editor. See Banaser. Cilicia. Weekly periodical, v. 3, no. 1-date (Jan. 5, 1918-date). New York, 1918-date. 4 deg.. *ONK Eritassard Hayastan, an Armenian weekly, v. 5, no. 26-v. 10, no. 42, 44-46, 48-v. 11, no. 22, 24-v. 12, no. 30, 32-v. 13, no. 62, 64-78, 82, v. 14, no. 1-20. New York, 1908-17. f deg.. ††*ONK The Friend of Armenia, new series, no. 50-51, 53-69 (July, Oct., 1912. April, 1913-Jan., 1918). London, 1912-18. 4 deg.. †*ONK Gabriel, M. S., editor. See Haik. Gaghapar. no. 1-12, 15-17, 19-86, 88-106, 108-135. Tiflis, 1916-17. f deg.. ††*ONK Gegharvest (L'art). Revue litteraire et artistique armenienne. Directeur-redacteur: G. Levonian. 1913, no. 5. Tiflis, 1913. f deg.. †*ONK The Gotchnag. Armenian weekly, v. 10-date (Jan. 1, 1910-date). New York, 1910-date. 4 deg.. *ONP Haik. M. S. Gabriel, editor, no. 1-24 (Jan. 1-Dec. 15, 1891). New York, 1891. f deg.. ††*ONK Hairenik. The oldest, largest and leading Armenian newspaper, in U. S. A. v. 3, no. 115-date (Sept. 21, 1901-date). Boston, 1901-date. f deg.. ††*ONK Levonian, G., editor. See Gegharvest. Mourdj. no. 12 (Dec, 1901). Tiflis, 1901. 8 deg.. *ONK National Armenian Relief Committee. Helping hand series, v. 1, no. 4--date (Sept., 1899-date). Worcester, Mass., 1899-date. 24 deg.. SHS New Armenia, v. 1-3, no. 9; v. 4-date (Oct., 1904-date). Boston and New York, 1904-date. 4 deg. and f deg.. †*ONK Title varies: Oct., 1904-Sept., 1913, Armenia; Feb.-April, 1914, Oriental world; Dec, 1915-date, New Armenia. La Voix de l'Armenie. Revue bi-mensuelle. annee 1, no. 5-date (March, 1918-date). Paris, 1918-date. 8 deg.. *ONK DESCRIPTION AND GEOGRAPHY Abbott, K. E. Notes of a tour in Armenia in 1837. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1843. 8 deg.. v. 12, p. 207-220.) KAA Abich, Hermann. Die Besteigung des Ararat am 29. Juli 1845 durch H. Abich. (In: Beitraege zur Kenntniss des Russischen Reiches. St. Petersburg, 1849. 8 deg.. Bd. 13, p. 39-72.) *QFB ---- Hauteurs absolues du systeme de l'Ararat et des pays environnants. (Societe de geographie Bulletin. Paris, 1851. 8 deg.. serie 4, v. 1, p. 66-73.) KAA ---- Vergleichende chemische Untersuchungen der Wasser des Caspischen Meeres, Urmia- und Van-See's. 2 pl. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Memoires: Sciences mathematiques et physiques. Saint Petersbourg, 1859. f deg.. serie 6, tome 7, p. 1-58.) *QCB Ainsworth, William Francis. Travels and researches in Asia Minor, Mesopotamia, Chaldea and Armenia. London: J. W. Parker, 1842. 2 v. 12 deg.. BBR Alaux, Louis Paul. The Armenian schools in the Ottoman Empire. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 5, p. 44-49.) †*ONK Alischan, Leonce. See Alishanian, Gheuont. Alishanian, Gheuont. Sissouan; ou, l'Armeno-Cilicie: description geographique et historique avec carte et illustrations. Traduit du texte armenien. Publie sous les auspices de Son Ex. Noubar Pacha. Venise: S. Lazare, 1899. viii, 539 p., 1 map, 2 pl. f deg.. †*ONK ---- Topographie de la Grande Armenie, par le R. P. Leonce Alischan; traduite de l'armenien par M. Ed. Dulaurier. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1869. 8 deg.. serie 6, v. 13, p. 385-446.) *OAA Brosset, Marie Felicite. Examen critique de quelques passages de la Description de la Grande-Armenie du P. L. Alichan, relatifs a la topographie d'Ani. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1862. f deg.. tome 4, col. 255-269.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863. tome 4, p. 392-412, *OAA. Allen, Thomas Gaskell, and W. L. Sachtleben. Across Asia on a bicycle. The journey of two American students from Constantinople to Peking. London: T. F. Unwin, 1895. xii, 234 p. 8 deg.. BBF Der Ararat. (Ausland. Muenchen, 1830. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 3, p. 1077-1078, 1082-1083, 1085-1086, 1090-1091.) †KAA The Armenians and the eastern question. [By "An Armenian."] [London: Gilbert & Rivington, 1876.] 7 p. 8 deg.. *ONK p.v.2 Arzruni, Andreas. Reise nach Sued-Kaukasien. (Gesellschaft fuer Erdkunde. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1895. 8 deg.. Bd.22, p. 602-611.) KAA Azhderian, Antranig. The Turk and the land of Haig; or, Turkey and Armenia, descriptive, historical and picturesque. New York: The Mershon Co. [1898.] xiv, 13-408 p., 1 port. 8 deg.. BBX Baker, G. Percival. An ascent of Ararat. (Alpine journal. London, 1880. 8 deg.. v. 9, p. 318-327.) PSL Banks, Edgar J. To the summit of Mount Ararat. (Open court. Chicago, 1913. 8 deg.. v. 27, p. 398-410.) *DA Banse, Ewald. Die Tuerkei; eine moderne Geographie... Braunschweig: G. Westermann, 1915. 2 p.l., 452 p., 1 folded map, 17 pl. 8 deg.. *OPK Barton, James Levi. Daybreak in Turkey. Boston: Pilgrim Press [1908]. 6 p.l., 11-294 p., 6 pl. 8 deg.. GIB ---- Who are the Armenians? (New Armenia. New York, 1915. f deg.. v. 8, p. 19-20.) †*ONK Basmadjian, K. J. Quelles etaient les frontieres de l'Armenie ancienne? (La voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1919. 8 deg.. annee 2, p. 21-25.) *ONK ---- Souvenir d'Ani. Paris, 1904. 24 pl., 1 plan. 16 deg.. *ONM The text, in Armenian and in French, is on the back of the plates. Belck, Waldemar. Beitraege zur alten Geographie und Geschichte Vorderasiens. Leipzig: E. Pfeiffer, 1901. 3 p.l., 112 p. 8 deg.. KCB Belin, Francois A. Extrait du journal d'un voyage de Paris a Erzeroum. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1852. 8 deg.. serie 4, v. 19, p. 365-378.) *OAA Bell, Mark S. Around and about Armenia. (Scottish geographical magazine. Edinburgh, 1890. 8 deg.. v. 6, p. 113-135.) KAA Bent, J. Theodore. Travels amongst the Armenians. (Contemporary review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 70, p. 695-709.) *DA Bierbaum, Paul Willi. Streifzuege im Kaukasus und in Hocharmenien (1912). Zuerich: O. Fuessli, 1913. 278 p., 20 pl. 12 deg.. (Orell Fuessli's Wanderbilder. no. 308-317.) PSK Binder, Henry. Au Kurdistan, en Mesopotamie et en Perse ... Paris: Maison Quantin, 1887. 3 p.l., 454 p., 1 port. 4 deg.. BBV Black, George Fraser. The gypsies of Armenia. Liverpool, 1913. 4 p. 8 deg.. QOD p.v.9 Repr.: Gypsy Lore Society. Journal, new series, v. 6, p. 327-330, QOX. Blau, Otto. Vom Urumia-See nach dem Van-See. 1 map. (Petermanns Mittheilungen. Gotha, 1863. 4 deg.. 1863, p. 201-210.) KAA Bliss, Edwin Munsell. Armenia. (In: The New Schaff-Herzog encyclopedia of religious knowledge. New York [cop. 1908]. f deg.. v. 1, p.288-296.) *R-ZAB Bluhm, Julius. Routen im tuerkischen Armenien. (Zeitschrift fuer allgemeine Erdkunde. Berlin, 1864. 8 deg.. Neue Folge, Bd. 16, p. 346-357.) KAA Bore, Eugene. Armenie. 144 p. (In: Jean M. Chopin, Russie. Paris, 1838. 8 deg.. v. 2.) GLD Brant, James. Journey through a part of Armenia and Asia Minor, in the year 1835. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1836. 8 deg.. v. 6, p. 187-223.) KAA ---- Notes of a journey through a part of Kurdistan, in the summer of 1838. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1841. 8 deg.. v. 10, p. 341-432.) KAA Brosset, Marie Felicite. Note sur le village armenien d'Acorhi et sur le couvent de St. Jacques. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin scientifique. St. Petersbourg, 1841. f deg.. v. 8, col. 41-48.) *QCB ---- Notice sur Edchmiadzin. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin scientifique. St. Petersbourg, 1840. f deg.. v. 7, col. 44-64.) *QCB ---- Rapport sur la 2de partie du voyage du P. Sargis Dchalaliants dans la Grande-Armenie. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin de la classe historico-philologique. St. Petersbourg, 1859. f deg.. tome 16, col. 201-205.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1859. tome 3, p. 589-594, *OAA. ---- Rapports sur un voyage archeologique dans la Georgie et dans l'Armenie, execute en 1847-1848. Livr. 1-3 and atlas. St. Petersbourg: Impr. de l'Academie imperiale des sciences, 1849-51. 4 v. 8 deg. and ob. 4 deg.. BBV and †BBV Atlas has title: Atlas du voyage archeologique dans la Transcaucasie. ---- See also John of Crimea. Brosset, Marie Felicite, and P. A. Jaubert. Description des principaux fleuves de la Grande-Armenie, d'apres le Djihan-Numa de Kiatib Tchelebi, par M. Amedee Jaubert, avec la traduction d'un fragment armenien du docteur Indjidjian, par M. Brosset. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1833. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 12, p. 458-70.) *OAA Broussali, Jean. L'Armenie. (Revue francaise de l'etranger et des colonies. Paris, 1886. 8 deg.. tome 3, p. 199-222, 507-521.) KAA Bryce (1. viscount), James Bryce. The ascent of Ararat. (Alpine journal. London, 1878. 8 deg.. v.8, p. 208-213.) PSL ---- On Armenia and Mount Ararat. (Royal Geographical Society. Proceedings. London, 1878. 8 deg.. v. 22, p. 169-183.) KAA ---- Transcaucasia and Ararat, being notes of a vacation tour in the autumn of 1876, by James Bryce. 4th ed. rev., with a supplementary chapter on the recent history of the Armenian question. London: Macmillan and Co., 1896. xix, 526 p., 1 map, 1 pl. 8 deg.. PSK ---- See also Tchobanian, Archag. Buxton, Harold. See Buxton, Noel, and Harold Buxton. Buxton, Noel, and Harold Buxton. Travel and politics in Armenia, with an introduction by Viscount Bryce, and a contribution on Armenian history and culture by Aram Raffi. New York: Macmillan Co., 1914. xx, 274 p., 1 map, 16 pl. 12 deg.. BBY Chantre, B. A travers l'Armenie russe. Karabagh. Vallee de l'Araxe. Massif de l'Ararat. (Tour du monde. Paris. 1891-92. f deg.. v. 61, p. 369-16; v. 62, p. 225-288; v. 63, p. 177-224; v. 64, p. 161-192.) †KBA Voulzie, G. A travers l'Armenie russe. 2 pl. (Revue francaise de l'etranger et des colonies. Paris, 1894. 8 deg.. tome 19, p. 170-176.) KAA Chantre, Ernest. L'Ararat. (Annales de geographie Paris, 1894. 8 deg.. tome 3, p. 81-94.) KAA ---- De Beyrouth a Tiflis a travers la Syrie, la Haute-Mesopotamie et le Kurdistan. (Tour du monde. Paris, 1889. f deg.. v.58, p. 209-304.) †KBA ---- Mission scientifique de Mr. Ernest Chantre dans la haute Mesopotamie, le Kurdistan et le Caucase ... [Lyon?] 1881. 28 mounted photographs in portfolio. 4 deg.. †*OFX ---- Premiers apercus sur les peuples de l'Armenie russe. (Societe d'anthropologie de Lyon. Bulletin. Lyon, 1890. 8 deg.. v.9, p. 81-85.) QOA ---- Rapport sur une mission scientifique dans l'Asie occidentale et specialement dans les regions de l'Ararat et du Caucase. (Archives des missions scientifiques et litteraires. Paris, 1883. 8 deg.. serie 3, tome 10, p. 199-263.) *EN Chantres Reisen am Ararat. (Globus. Braunschweig, 1892. f deg.. Bd. 62, p. 246-250, 278-281.) †KAA Chikhachov, Piotr Aleksandrovich. Asie Mineure; description physique, statistique et archeologique de cette contree, par P. de Tchihatcheff. Partie 1-4. Paris: Gide et J. Baudry, 1853-69. 6 v. in 8. 4 deg.. KCB and †KCB Partie 1. Geographie physique comparee. Text and atlas. Partie 2. Climatologie et zoologie. Partie 3. Botanique. 2 v. Partie 4. Geologie. 3 v. Partie 4 published by L. Guerin. ---- Reisen in Kleinasien und Armenien, 1847-1863 ... Gotha: J. Perthes, 1867. viii, 68 p., 1 map. 4 deg.. (Petermanns Mitteilungen. Ergaenzungsband 4, Heft 20.) KAA Childs, W. J. Across Asia Minor on foot. New York: Dodd, Mead & Co., 1917. xvi, 459 p., 40 pl., 1 port. 8 deg.. BBS Chopin, J. De l'origine des peuples habitant la province d'Armenie. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin scientifique. St. Petersbourg, 1841. f deg.. v.8. col. 16-20.) *QCB The Condition of Armenia. (Speaker. London, 1900. f deg.. new series, v. 2, p. 673-674.) *DA Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis. Armenia and the Armenians. (National review. London, 1889. 8 deg.. v. 14, p. 295-315.) *DA Reprinted in New Armenia, v. 8, p. 292-294, 309-311, †*ONK. Cooley, W. D., translator. See Parrot, Friedrich. Creagh, James. Armenians, Koords and Turks. London: S. Tinsley & Co., 1880. 2 v. 8 deg.. BBP Cuinet, Vital. La Turquie d'Asie. Geographie administrative, statistique, descriptive et raisonnee de chaque province de l'Asie-Mineure. Paris: E. Leroux, 1892-95. 4 v. 4 deg.. KCB Curtis, William Eleroy. Around the Black Sea; Asia Minor, Armenia, Caucasus, Circassia, Daghestan, the Crimea, Roumania. New York: Hodder & Stoughton, 1911. 7 p.1., 3-456 p., 1 map, 32 pl. 8 deg.. BBS Curzon, Robert. See Zouche (14. baron), Robert Curzon. Dale, Darley. Armenia and the Armenians. (American Catholic quarterly review. Philadelphia, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 42, p. 563-571.) *DA Dalyell, Robert A. O. Earthquake of Erzerum, June, 1859. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1863. 8 deg.. v. 33, p. 234-237.) KAA Damas, Andre de. Coup d'oeil sur l'Armenie a propos d'une mission de la Compagnie de Jesus ouverte en Asie Mineure par les ordres du Pape Leon XIII. Lyon: Delhomme et Briguet, 1888. 2 p.1., vi, 602 p., 2 charts. 8 deg.. BBX Davey, Richard. The sultan and his subjects. New York: E. P. Dutton & Co., 1897. 2 v. 8 deg.. GIP ---- Turkey and Armenia. (Fortnightly review. London, 1895. 8 deg.. new series, v. 57, p. 197-210.) *DA Develay, Albert. Autour des lacs de Van et d'Ourmiah. (Revue scientifique. Paris, 1892. 4 deg.. v. 49, p. 553-557.) OA Deyrolle, Theophile. Voyage dans le Lazistan et l'Armenie. (Tour du monde. Paris, 1875-76. f deg.. v. 29, p. 1-32; v. 30, p. 257-288; v. 31, p. 369-416.) †KBA Dingelstedt, V. The Armenians or Haikans; an ethnographical sketch. (Scottish geographical magazine. Edinburgh, 1913. 8 deg.. v. 29, p. 413-429.) KAA Diran, A. Etchmiadzin. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 5, p. 32-43.) †*ONK The Dispersion of the Armenian nation. From the English Blue Book. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9. p. 89-91.) †*ONK The Distribution of the Armenian nation. From the English Blue Book. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 111, 143.) †*ONK Dolens, Noel. Ce que l'on voit en Armenie. (Tour du monde. Paris, 1906-07. f deg.. nouvelle serie, v. 12, p. 457-528; v. 13, p. 217-264.) †KBA Dominian, Leon. The peoples of northern and central Asiatic Turkey. 2 maps. (American Geographical Society. Bulletin. New York, 1915. 8 deg.. v. 47, p. 832-871.) KAA Dubois de Montpereux, Frederic. Voyage autour du Caucase, chez les Tcherkesses et les Abkhases, en Colchide, en Georgie, en Armenie, et en Crimee; avec un atlas geographique, pittoresque, archeologique, geologique... tome 1-6 and atlas. Paris: Gide, 1839-43. 7 v. 8 deg. and f deg.. BBV and †††BBV Dulaurier, Edouard. Commerce, tarif des douanes et condition civile des etrangers dans le royaume de la Petite Armenie au moyen age. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1858. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 7, p. 277-287, 359-366.) *OAA ---- Ethnographie de l'Armenie. (Societe d'ethnographie. Actes. Paris, 1872. 8 deg.. tome 6, p. 132-136.) *OAA ---- Etude sur l'organisation politique, religieuse et administrative du royaume de la Petite-Armenie. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1861. 8 deg.. serie 5, v. 17, p. 377-437; v. 18, p. 289-357.) *OAA ---- See also Alishanian, Gheuont. Edschmiatsin. 1 pl. (Der Christliche Orient. Westend-Berlin, 1897. 4 deg.. 1897, p. 51-56.) †*OAA Edwards, B. B. Ascent of Mount Ararat. (Biblical repository and quarterly observer. Andover, 1836. 8 deg.. v. 7, p. 390-416.) *DA Erk-Ura, die armenische Kolonie auf dem Berge Ararat. (Ausland. Muenchen, 1834. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 7, p. 729-730.) †KAA Excursions in Armenia. (Fraser's magazine. London, 1857. 8 deg.. v. 55, p. 602-611.) *DA Flandin, Eugene. Souvenirs de voyage en Armenie et en Perse. L'Armenie. (Revue des deux mondes. Paris, 1851. 8 deg.. nouvelle periode, v. 10, p. 651-681.) *DM ---- Ueber Alt- und Neuarmenien. (Ausland. Stuttgart, 1851. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 24, p. 489-491, 494-495, 498-499.) †KAA Freshfield, Douglas William. Early ascents of Ararat. (Alpine journal. London, 1878. 8 deg.. v. 8, p. 213-221.) PSL ---- Travels in the Central Caucasus and Bashan including visits to Ararat and Tabreez and ascents of Kazbek and Elbruz. London: Longmans, Green and Co., 1869. xiii p., 1 l., 509 p., 3 maps, 5 pl. 8 deg.. PSK Friederichsen, Maximilian Hermann. Die Grenzmarken des europaeischen Russlands, ihre geographische Eigenart und ihre Bedeutung fuer den Weltkrieg. Hamburg: L. Friederichsen & Co., 1915. 148 p. 8 deg.. *QG ---- Russisch Armenien und der Ararat. 1 pl. (Geographische Gesellschaft in Hamburg. Mittheilungen. Hamburg, 1900. 8 deg.. Bd. 16, p. 1-15.) KAA Gaidzakian, Ohan. Illustrated Armenia and the Armenians. Boston: B. H. Aznive, 1908. 255 p., 12 pl., 17 ports. 2. ed. 12 deg.. BBY Gatteyrias, J. A. L'Armenie et les Armeniens. Paris: Leopold Cerf, 1882. 144 p. 12 deg.. BBY Ghisleri, Arcangelo. L'Armenia e gli Armeni. (Emporium. Roma, 1916. 4 deg.. v. 43, p. 259-273.) MAA Gooch, George Peabody. Who are the Armenians? A survey. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 63-70.) *ONK Graves, John Temple. The Armenian nation. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 3, p. 1-2.) †*ONK Gregory, G. Marcar. See Tchobanian, Archag. Grothe, Hugo. Der russisch-tuerkische Kriegsschauplatz (Kaukasien und Armenien). Mit 8 Abbildungen und 4 Kartenskizzen im Text. Leipzig: Veit & Co., 1915. 45 p. 8 deg.. (Kriegsgeographische Zeitbilder. Heft 5.) BTZE Guinness, Walter. Impressions of Armenia and Kurdistan. (National review. London, 1914. 8 deg.. v. 62, p. 789-801.) *DA Hamilton, William J. Extracts from notes made on a journey in Asia Minor in 1836. 1 map. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1837. 8 deg.. v. 7, p. 34-61.) KAA ---- Researches in Asia Minor, Pontus and Armenia; with some account of their antiquities and geology. London: J. Murray, 1842. 2 v. 8 deg.. BBR Handbook for travellers in Asia Minor, Transcaucasia, Persia, etc., edited by ... Sir C. W. Wilson. London: J. Murray, 1895. xii, 88, 416 p., 10 maps. 12 deg.. (Murray's handbooks.) KCB ---- London: J. Murray, 1905. xii, 2, 416 p., 6 maps, 2 plans. 16 deg.. (Murray's handbooks.) KCB Heneage, Charles, translator. See Thielmann, Max Franz Guido, Freiherr von. Hepworth, George Hughes. Through Armenia on horseback. New York: E. P. Dutton & Co., 1898. xii, 355 p., 1 map, 24 pl., 1 port. 8 deg.. BBY Hodgetts, Edward Arthur Brayley. Round about Armenia; the record of a journey across the Balkans, through Turkey, the Caucasus, and Persia. London: S. Low, Marston and Co., Ltd. [1916.] xii p., 1 l., 296 p., 1 map. 12 deg.. BBY Hoffmeister, Eduard von. Durch Armenien; eine Wanderung und der Zug Xenophons bis zum schwarzen Meere; eine militaer-geographische Studie. Leipzig: B. G. Teubner, 1911. viii p., 2 l., 4-251 p., 2 maps, 5 pl. 4 deg.. BBY Bibliography, p. vii-viii. Hommaire de Hell, Adele. Les Armeniennes a Constantinople. (Revue de l'Orient. Paris, 1845. 8 deg.. tome 7, p. 130-139.) *OAA Howel, Thomas. A journal of the passage from India, by a route partly unfrequented, through Armenia and Natolia, or Asia Minor. To which are added, observations and instructions, for the use of those who intend to travel, either to or from India, by that route. London: the author [1789]. 2 p.l., 187 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. BBR Huebschmann, Heinrich. Die altarmenischen Ortsnamen. (Indogermanische Forschungen. Strassburg, 1904. 8 deg.. Bd. 16, p. 197-490.) RAA Huntington, Ellsworth. Through the great canon of the Euphrates river. (Geographical journal. London, 1902. 8 deg.. v. 20, p. 175-200.) KAA Hyvernat, Henry. Armenia, past and present. (Catholic world. New York, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 62, p. 312-326.) *DA ---- See also Mueller-Simonis, Paul, and Henry Hyvernat. In Tuerkisch-Armenien. (Globus. Braunschweig, 1876. f deg.. Bd. 29, p. 340-344, 353-358, 369-374.) †KAA Injijian, Ghougas. See Brosset, Marie Felicite, and P. A. Jaubert. Ischchanian, B. Die armenische Bevoelkerung in der Tuerkei. (Nord und Sued. Breslau, 1913. 4 deg.. Bd. 146, p. 186-194.) *DF Jaubert, Pierre Amedee. Voyage en Armenie et en Perse, fait dans les annees 1805 et 1806.... Suivi d'une notice sur le Ghilan et le Mazenderan par M. le colonel Trezel. Paris: Pelicier, 1821. 2 p.l., xii, 506 p., 1 l., 1 map in pocket, 8 pl., 2 ports. 8 deg.. BBY ---- See also Brosset, Marie Felicite, and P. A. Jaubert. Jenkins, Hester Donaldson. Armenia and the Armenians. (National geographic magazine. Washington, 1915. 8 deg.. v. 28, p. 329-360.) KAA Johansson, Karl Ferdinand. Om de nyaste upptaeckterna i Armenien. (Ymer. Stockholm, 1901. 8 deg.. v. 20, p. 347-375.) KAA John of Crimea. Description des monasteres armeniens d'Haghbat et de Sanahin, par l'archimandrite Jean de Crimee, avec notes et appendice par M. Brosset. 1 p.l., 94 p. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Memoires. St. Petersbourg, 1863. f deg.. serie 7, tome 6, no. 6.) *QCB Armenian and Russian texts. Kiepert, Heinrich. Ueber die Lage der armenischen Hauptstadt Tigranokerta. 1 map. (Koeniglich Preussische Akademie der Wissenschaften. Monatsberichte. Berlin, 1874. 8 deg.. 1873, p. 164-210.) *EE Kinneir, John Macdonald. Armenia. (In his: A geographical memoir of the Persian Empire. London: J. Murray, 1813. f deg.. p. 318-338.) †*ONA ---- Journey through Asia Minor, Armenia and Koordistan, in the years 1813 and 1814; with remarks on the marches of Alexander, and retreat of the ten thousand. London: John Murray, 1818. 1 p.l., v-xii, 603 p. 8 deg.. BBR Klaproth, Julius Heinrich. Description de l'Armenie russe d'apres les notions publiees en Russie. (Nouvelles annales des voyages. Paris, 1834. 8 deg.. tome 61, p. 286-312.) KAA ---- Opisanie Rossiiskoi Armenii. (Biblioteka dlia Chteniia. St. Petersburg, 1834. 8 deg.. 1834, v. 4, part 3, p. 1-20.) *QCA Description of Russian Armenia. Knapp, Grace H. See Ussher, Clarence Douglas. Kolenati, Friedrich Anton. Reiseerinnerungen. Dresden: R. Kuntze, 1858-59. 2 v. 8 deg.. BBY Theil 1. Die Bereisung Hocharmeniens und Elisabethopols, der Schekinschen Provinz und des Kasbek im Central-Kaukasus. Theil 2. Die Bereisung Circassien's. Kotschy, Theodor. Neue Reise nach Klein-Asien. (Petermanns Mittheilungen. Gotha, 1859-60. 8 deg.. Bd. 5, p. 342-344, 372-375; Bd.6, p. 68-77.) KAA L., J. L'Armenie et les Armeniens. Conference de M. Minas Tcheraz. (Societe de geographie de Marseille. Bulletin. Marseille, 1898. 8 deg.. tome 22, p. 182-184.) KAA Langlois, Victor. Les populations armeniennes independantes du mont Taurus. Le Zeithun, Hatchin et le Giawourdagh. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1854. 8 deg.. [serie 2,] tome 16, p. 103-110, 186-192.) *OAA ---- Voyage dans la Cilicie et dans les montagnes du Taurus execute pendant les annees 1852-1853 ... Paris: B. Duprat, 1861. x, 484 p., 1 map, 28 pl., 1 port. 8 deg.. BBR ---- Voyage a Sis, capitale de l'Armenie au moyen age. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1855. 8 deg.. serie 5, v. 5, p. 257-300.) *OAA Lanin, E. B. Armenia, and the Armenian people. (Fortnightly review. London, 1890. 8 deg.. new series, v.48, p. 258-273.) *DA Layard, Sir Austen Henry. Discoveries in the ruins of Nineveh and Babylon; with travels in Armenia, Kurdistan and the desert: being the result of a second expedition undertaken for the trustees of the British Museum. London: J. Murray, 1853. xxiv, 686 p., 2 maps, 3 plans, 10 pl. 8 deg.. *OCN ---- ---- New York: Harper & Brothers, 1853. xvi, 586 p., 2 maps, 3 plans, 2 pl. 8 deg.. *OCN ---- ---- New York: G. P. Putnam & Co., 1853. xxii p., 1 l., 686 p., 1 map, 3 plans. 10 pl. 8 deg.. *OCN Lehmann-Haupt, Ferdinand Friedrich Karl. Armenien, einst und jetzt: Reisen und Forschungen. Hrsg. mit Unterstuetzung des Koeniglich Preussischen Kultusministeriums, der Averhoff-Stiftung und der Buergermeister Kellinghusen-Stiftung zu Hamburg, der Rudolf Virchow-Stiftung zu Berlin sowie befreundeter Foerderer. Bd. 1. Berlin: B. Behr, 1910. 8 deg.. BBY Bd. 1. Vom Kaukasus zum Tigris und nach Tigranokerta. Longuinoff, D. Ascension de l'Ararat. (Societe de geographie. Bulletin. Paris, 1851. 8 deg.. serie 4, v. 1, p. 52-65.) KAA Lynch, Henry Finnis Blosse. Armenia: travels and studies, v. 1-2. London: Longmans, Green and Co., 1901. 4 deg.. *R-BBY Reviewed by F. F. K. Lehmann-Haupt in Petermanns Mitteilungen, Bd. 49, p. 231-236, KAA; also by Ira M. Price in the Dial, v.-32, p. 203-204, *DA. Tonapetian, P. H. F. B. Lynch and his book. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 7, p. 12-22.) †*ONK Turkey and Armenia. (Quarterly review. London, 1902. 8 deg.. v. 195, p. 590-616.) *DA A review of Lynch's Armenia, Earl Percy's The Highlands of Asiatic Turkey and Sir Chas. Eliot's Turkey in Europe. Lynch, Henry Finnis Blosse. The ascent of Mount Ararat. (Scribner's magazine. New York, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 19, p. 215-235.) *DA Reprinted in Mountain climbing, 1897, p. 159-222, PSK. McCoan, James Carlile. Our new protectorate. Turkey in Asia, its geography, races, resources, and government. London: Chapman and Hall, 1879. 2 v. 8 deg.. BBO Macler, Frederic. Autour de la Cilicie. Zeythoun (notes d'ethnographie armenienne). (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1916. 8 deg.. serie 11, v. 7, p. 139-169.) *OAA Maksimov, Sergyei V. Armianckii narod. (In his: Sobranie sochinenii. St. Petersburg, 1913. 8 deg.. v. 19, p. 187-192.) *QDB The Armenian people. Markoff, Anatolius Vladimirovich. Russian Armenia and the prospects for British trade therein. (Journal of the Society of Arts. London, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 43, p. 225-231.) VA Markoff, E. Eine Besteigung des grossen Ararat. (Ausland. Stuttgart, 1889. f deg.. Jahrg. 62, p. 244-249.) †KAA Marquart, Josef. Eransahr nach der Geographie des Ps. Moses Xorenac`i. Mit historisch-kritischem Kommentar und historischen und topographischen Excursen. Berlin: Weidmann, 1901. 358 p. 4 deg.. (Koenigliche Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu Goettingen. Abhandlungen. Philologisch-historische Klasse. Neue Folge, Bd. 3, Nr. 2.) *EE Martyr, bishop of Arzendjan. Relation d'un voyage fait en Europe et dans l'ocean Atlantique, a la fin du quinzieme siecle, sous le regne de Charles VIII, par Martyr, eveque d'Arzendjan, dans la grande Armenie, ecrite par lui-meme en armenien, et traduite en francais par M. Saint-Martin. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1826. 8 deg.. serie 1, v. 9, p. 321-373.) *OAA Maunsell, Francis Richard. Eastern Turkey in Asia and Armenia. (Scottish geographical magazine. Edinburgh, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 12, p. 225-241.) KAA Menant, Joachim. A travers l'Armenie russe. (Nouvelle revue. Paris, 1894. 8 deg.. v.86, p. 23-37.) *DM Mexborough (4. earl), John Charles George Savile. Notes on a journey from Erz-Rum, by Mush, Diyar-Bekr, and Bireh-jik to Aleppo, in June, 1838. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1841. 8 deg.. v. 10, p. 445-454.) KAA Mexborough (5. earl), John Horace Savile. Half round the old world; being some account of a tour in Russia, the Caucasus, Persia, and Turkey, 1865-66. London: Edward Moxon & Co., 1867. 2 p.l., 403 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. BTYB Millingen, Frederick. Wild life among the Koords. London: Hurst and Blackett, 1870. xiii, 380 p., 1 map, 1 pl. 8 deg.. BBV Monteith, William. Journal of a tour through Azerdbijan and the shores of the Caspian. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1834. 8 deg.. v. 3, p. 1-58.) KAA ---- Notes sur la position de plusieurs anciennes villes situees dans les plaines d'Ararat et de Nakktchevan et sur les bords de l'Araxe. (Nouvelles annales des voyages. Paris, 1852. 8 deg.. serie 5, tome 32, p. 129-179.) KAA Morgan, Jacques Jean Marie de. Les Armeniens. (Revue de Paris. Paris, 1916. 8 deg.. annee 23, tome 3, p. 118-133.) *DM Morier, James. A journey through Persia, Armenia, and Asia Minor, to Constantinople, in the years 1808 and 1809; in which is included some account of the proceedings of His Majesty's mission, under Sir Harford Jones ... to the court of Persia ... London: Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme, and Brown, 1812. xvi p., 1 l., 438 p., 3 maps, 26 pl. 4 deg.. †BCR ---- A second journey through Persia, Armenia, and Asia Minor to Constantinople, between the years 1810 and 1816; with a journal of the voyage by the Brazils and Bombay to the Persian Gulf; together with an account of the proceedings of His Majesty's embassy, under Sir Gore Ouseley. London: Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme, and Brown, 1818. xx, 435 p., 2 maps, 17 pl. 4 deg.. †BCR Moses of Chorene. See Marquart, Josef; also Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich. Mounsey, Augustus Henry. A journey through the Caucasus and the interior of Persia. London: Smith, Elder & Co., 1872. xi, 336 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. GMV Mueller-Simonis, Paul, and Henry Hyvernat. Du Caucase au golfe Persique a travers l'Armenie, le Kurdistan et la Mesopotamie par P. Mueller-Simonis suivie de notices sur la geographie et l'histoire ancienne de l'Armenie et les inscriptions cuneiformes du bassin de Van par H. Hyvernat. Washington: Universite catholique d'Amerique, 1892. viii, 628 p., 2 maps, 32 pl. 4 deg.. (Relation des missions scientifiques de H. Hyvernat et P. Mueller-Simonis. 1888-1889.) †BBV Bibliographie, p. 605-611. La Nation armenienne, son passe, son present, son avenir politique et religieux. Paris: Bureaux des oeuvres d'Orient [1899]. 2 p.l., 101 p. 8 deg.. BBH p.v.3 Extr.: Revue illustree de la Terre Sainte et de l'Orient chretien. Nolde, Eduard, Baron. Reise nach Innerarabien, Kurdistan und Armenien, 1892. Braunschweig: F. Vieweg und Sohn, 1895. xv, 272 p., 1 map, 1 port. 8 deg.. *OFW Notice de la ville d'Erivan, capitale de l'Armenie russe. Traduit du russe. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1833. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 12, p. 254-262.) *OAA Osman Bey, originally Frederick Millingen. See Millingen, Frederick. Palgrave, William Gifford. Eastern Christians. (In his: Essays on eastern questions. London, 1872. 8 deg.. p. 164-224.) GIE The Armenians, p. 182-193. Parrot, Friedrich. Journey to Ararat. Translated by W. D. Cooley. London: Longman, Brown, Green, and Longmans [1845]. xii, 375 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. (World surveyed in the nineteenth century, v. 1.) PSK ---- ---- New York: Harper & Bros., 1846. xi, 15-389 p., 1 map, 1 pl. 12 deg.. BBY Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich. Armianskaia geografiia vii vieka po r. kh. pripycyvavshaiasia Moiseiu Khorenskomu. St. Petersburg: Akademiya Nauk, 1877. xxviii, 84, 26 p. 8 deg.. *QFP The Armenian geography of the seventh century, A. D., attributed to Moses Khorensky. Pears, Sir Edwin. Turkey and its people. London: Methuen & Co., Ltd. [1911.] vi p., 1 l., 409 p. 8 deg.. *R-GIP Peterson, Wilhelm. Aus Transkaukasien und Armenien. Reisebriefe. Leipzig: Duncker & Humblot, 1885. x, 140 p. 12 deg.. BBO Pichon, Jules. Itineraire de Djoulfa a Roudout-Kale, par l'Armenie, la Georgie, l'Imeretie et la Mingrelie. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1853. 8 deg.. [serie 2,] tome 13, p. 109-121.) *OAA Pitton de Tournefort, Joseph. Relation d'un voyage du Levant, fait par ordre du roy. Contenant l'histoire ancienne & moderne de plusieurs isles de l'Archipel, de Constantinople, des cotes de la Mer Noire, de l'Armenie, de la Georgie, des frontieres de Perse & de l'Asie Mineure ... Enrichie de descriptions & de figures d'un grand nombre de plantes rares, de divers animaux, et de plusieurs observations touchant l'histoire naturelle. Paris: Imprimerie royale, 1717. 2 v. 4 deg.. *OPK ---- ---- Lyon: Anisson et Posuel, 1717. 3 v. 8 deg.. BVX ---- ---- London: D. Midwinter, 1741. 3 v. 8 deg.. BVX Pollington, viscount. See Mexborough (4. earl), John Charles George Savile; and Mexborough (5. earl), John Horace Savile. Porter, Robert Ker. Travels in Georgia, Persia, Armenia, ancient Babylonia ... during the years 1817, 1818, 1819, and 1820. London: Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme, and Brown, 1821-22. 2 v. 4 deg.. †BBV Powers, Harriet G. In Armenian villages. (Chautauquan. Meadville, 1889. 8 deg.. v. 10, p. 197-202.) *DA Price, M. Philips. A journey through Turkish Armenia and Persian Khurdistan. (Manchester Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1915. 8 deg.. v. 30, p. 45-67.) KAA Radde, Gustav. Briefe von Dr. Gustav Radde ueber seine Bereisung von Hoch-Armenien, 1871. (Petermanns Mittheilungen. Gotha, 1872. 4 deg.. Bd. 18, p. 206-209.) KAA ---- Die Ebene des Oberen Frat. (Petermanns Mittheilungen. Gotha, 1877. 4 deg.. Bd. 23, p. 260-267.) KAA ---- Karabagh. Bericht ueber die im Sommer 1890 im russischen Karabagh von Dr. Gustav Radde und Dr. Jean Valentin ausgefuehrte Reise. Gotha: J. Perthes, 1890. 1 p.l., 56 p., 1 map. 4 deg.. (Petermanns Mitteilungen. Ergaenzungsband 21, Nr. 100.) KAA ---- Vier Vortraege ueber den Kaukasus gehalten im Winter 1873/4 in den groesseren Staedten Deutschlands. Gotha: J. Perthes, 1874. vi, 71 p., 2 maps. 4 deg.. (Petermanns Mittheilungen. Ergaenzungsband 8, Nr. 36.) KAA ---- See also Reisen im armenischen Hochland; also Reisen in Hoch-Armenien; also Vorlaeufiger Bericht. Raffi, Aram. From London to Armenia. (Ararat. London, 1913-14. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 180-184, 211-218, 250-258, 287-296, 328-334, 359-364, 401-408; v. 2, p. 56-60, 85-90, 115-123, 164-172.) *ONK ---- The land of Armenia. (Ararat. London, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 444-448; v. 6, p. 41-49, 99-112, 175-183.) *ONK ---- See also Buxton, Noel, and Harold Buxton. Rassam, Hormuzd. Asshur and the land of Nimrod: being an account of the discoveries made in the ancient ruins of Nineveh, Asshur, Sepharvaim, Calah, Babylon, Borsippa, Cuthah, and Van, including a narrative of different journeys in Mesopotamia, Assyria, Asia Minor, and Koordistan. With an introduction by Robert W. Rogers. Cincinnati: Curts & Jennings, 1897. xvi, 432 p., 1 map, 2 plans, 19 pl., 1 port. 8 deg.. *OCN Reclus, Elisee. Asiatic Turkey. (In his: Universal geography. London, n. d. 4 deg.. v. 9, p. 162-191.) KAN Reisen im armenischen Hochland, ausgefuehrt im Sommer 1871 von Dr. G. Radde und Dr. G. Siewers. (Petermanns Mittheilungen. Gotha, 1872-73. 4 deg.. Bd. 18, p. 367-380, 445-450; Bd. 19, p. 174-183.) KAA Reisen in Hoch-Armenien, ausgefuehrt im Sommer 1874 von Dr. G. Radde und Dr. G. Siewers. (Petermanns Mittheilungen. Gotha, 1875. 4 deg.. Bd. 21, p. 56-64, 301-310.) KAA Rey, F. C. Les periples des cotes de Syrie et de la Petite Armenie. 1 map. (Societe de l'Orient latin. Archives de l'Orient latin. Paris, 1884. 8 deg.. tome 2, p. 329-353.) *OBA Rikli, Martin. Natur- und Kulturbilder aus den Kaukasuslaendern und Hocharmenien von Teilnehmern der schweizerischen naturwissenschaftlichen Studienreise, Sommer 1912, unter Leitung von M. Rikli. Zuerich: O. Fuessli, 1914. viii, 317 p., 32 pl. 8 deg.. GMV Riseis, G. de. Traverso l'Armenia russa. (Nuova antologia. Roma, 1903. 8 deg.. serie 4, v. 105, p. 218-235.) NNA Ritter, Karl. Die Erdkunde im Verhaeltniss zur Natur und zur Geschichte des Menschen, oder allgemeine, vergleichende Geographie, als sichere Grundlage des Studiums und Unterrichts in physikalischen und historischen Wissenschaften, von Carl Ritter ... Zweite stark vermehrte und umgearbeitete Ausgabe. Theil 1-19. Berlin: G. Reimer, 1822-59. 20 v. 8 deg.. KC The latter part of Theil 9 and Theil 10 treat of Armenia. Rogers, Robert W. See Rassam, Hormuzd. Rohrbach, Paul. Armenier und Kurden. (Gesellschaft fuer Erdkunde. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1900. 8 deg.. Bd. 27, p. 128-133.) KAA ---- Vom Kaukasus zum Mittelmeer. Eine Hochzeits- und Studienreise durch Armenien. Mit 42 Abbildungen im Text. Leipzig: B. G. Teubner, 1903. vi p., 1 l., 224 p., 1 pl. 8 deg.. BBY Roussel, Therese. Souvenirs d'une Francaise en Armenie. (Tour du monde. Paris, 1913. f deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 19, p. 529-576.) †KBA Saad, L. Zwei tuerkische Staedtebilder aus der Gegenwart. (Petermanns Mitteilungen. Gotha, 1896. 4 deg.. Bd. 42, p. 282-290.) KAA Erzerum and Trapezunt. Sachtleben, William Lewis. See Allen, Thomas Gaskell, and W. L. Sachtleben. Safrastian, A. S. Armenia: her people and history. (Ararat. London, 1914-15. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 218-223, 258-262, 301-305, 343-346.) *ONK Saint-Martin, Jean Antoine. See Martyr, bishop of Arzendjan. Schaffer, Franz Xavier. Cilicia. Gotha: J. Perthes, 1903. 1 pl., 110 p., 2 maps. 4 deg.. (Petermanns Mitteilungen. Ergaenzungsband 30, Heft 141.) KAA Schilder, Siegmund. Eine Zweiglinie der Bagdadbahn nach Suedarmenien. (Oesterreichische Monatsschrift fuer den Orient. Wien, 1913. f deg.. Jahrg. 39, p. 59-61.) †*OAA Schulz, Ed. Memoire sur le lac de Van et ses environs. 8 facs. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1840. 8 deg.. serie 3, v. 9, p. 257-323.) *OAA Schweiger-Lerchenfeld, A. von. Armenia and the Armenians. (Chautauquan. Meadville, Pa., 1896. 8 deg.. v. 22, p. 697-703.) *DA ---- Erzerum und Erzingdjan. (Ausland. Stuttgart, 1878. 4 deg.. v. 51, p. 253-255.) †KAA Seidlitz, N. von. Pastuchows Besteigung des Alagoes. (Globus. Braunschweig, 1896. f deg.. Bd. 70, p. 85-90.) †KAA ---- Pastuchows Besteigung des Ararats. (Globus. Braunschweig, 1894. f deg.. Bd. 66, p. 309-315.) †KAA ---- See also Selenoy, G. L., and N. von Seidlitz. Selenoy, G. L., and N. von Seidlitz. Die Verbreitung der Armenier in der asiatischen Tuerkei und in Transkaukasien. 1 map. (Petermanns Mittheilungen. Gotha, 1896. 4 deg.. Bd. 42, p. 1-10.) KAA Seylaz, Louis. L'ascension du mont Ararat. (Tour du monde. Paris, 1911. f deg.. nouvelle serie, annee 17, p. 397-408.) †KBA Shiel, J. Notes on a journey from Tabriz, through Kurdistan, via Van, Bitlis, Se'ert and Erbil, to Suleimaniyeh, in July and August, 1836. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1838. 8 deg.. v. 8, p. 54-101.) KAA Shoemaker, Michael Myers. The heart of the Orient. Saunterings through Georgia, Armenia, Persia, Turkomania and Turkestan to the vale of Paradise. New York: G. P. Putnam's Sons, 1904. xiii, 416 p., 1 map, 1 pl. 8 deg.. BBS Sievers, G. See Reisen im armenischen Hochland; also Reisen in Hoch-Armenien; also Vorlaeufiger Bericht. Sievers, Wilhelm. Asien. Leipzig: Bibliographisches Institut, 1904. xi, 712 p., 16 maps, 20 pl. 2. ed. 4 deg.. (Allgemeine Laenderkunde.) KC Sijalski. Erinnerungen aus Armenien. (Ausland. Stuttgart, 1839. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 12, p. 949-950, 955-956, 965-966, 970-971.) †KAA Slousch, Nahum. Le Caucase, l'Armenie et l'Azerbeidjan d'apres les auteurs arabes, slaves et juifs. (Revue du monde musulman. Paris, 1910. 8 deg.. tome 10, p. 494-508; tome 11, p. 54-65, 260-279; tome 12, p. 262-272.) *OAA Southgate, Horatio, bishop. Narrative of a tour through Armenia, Kurdistan, Persia and Mesopotamia, with an introduction and occasional observations upon the condition of Mohammedanism and Christianity in those countries. New York: D. Appleton & Co., 1840. 2 v. 12 deg.. BBR Streck, Maximilian. Das Gebiet der heutigen Landschaften Armenien, Kurdistan und Westpersien nach den babylonisch-assyrischen Keilinschriften. (Zeitschrift fuer Assyriologie. Weimar, Berlin, 1898-1900. 8 deg.. Bd. 13, p. 57-110; Bd. 14, p. 103-172; Bd. 15, p. 257-382.) *OCL Strecker, Wilhelm. Beitraege zur Geographie von Hoch-Armenien. 3 maps. (Gesellschaft fuer Erdkunde. Zeitschrift. Berlin, 1869. 8 deg.. Bd. 4, p. 145-162, 512-538.) KAA ---- Notizen ueber das obere Zab-Ala-Gebiet und Routiers von Wan nach Kotur. (Petermanns Mittheilungen. Gotha, 1863. 4 deg.. 1863, p. 257-262.) KAA Stuart, Robert. The ascent of Mount Ararat in 1856. (Royal Geographical Society. Proceedings. London, 1877. 8 deg.. v. 21, p. 77-92.) KAA Suter, Henry. Notes on a journey from Erz-Rum to Trebizond, by way of Shebbkhaneh, Kara Hisar, Sivas, Tokat and Samsun, in October, 1838. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1841. 8 deg.. v. 10, p. 434-444.) KAA Taylor, J. G. Journal of a tour in Armenia, Kurdistan and Upper Mesopotamia, with notes of researches in the Deyrsim Dagh, in 1866. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1868. 8 deg.. v. 38, p. 281-361.) KAA ---- Travels in Kurdistan, with notices of the sources of the Eastern and Western Tigris, and ancient ruins in their neighbourhood. (Royal Geographical Society. Journal. London, 1865. 8 deg.. v. 35, p. 21-58.) KAA Tchelebi, Kiatib. See Brosset, Marie Felicite, and P. A. Jaubert. Tchihatcheff, P. de. See Chikhachov, Piotr Aleksandrovich. Tchobanian, Archag. The Armenian nation. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. f deg.. v. 8, p. 244-247.) †*ONK ---- L'Armenie, son histoire, sa litterature, son role en Orient. Conference faite le 9 mars 1897 a la salle de la Societe de geographie.... Paris: Societe du Mercure de France, 1897. 90 p. 5. ed. 12 deg.. BBX ---- The people of Armenia; their past, their culture, their future. Translated by G. Marcar Gregory.... With introduction by the Right Honourable Viscount Bryce. London: J. M. Dent & Sons, Ltd., 1914. xi, 68 p. 16 deg.. BBX Telfer, J. Buchan. Armenia and its people. (Journal of the Society of Arts. London, 1891. 8 deg.. v. 39, p. 567-584.) VA Texier, Charles Felix Marie. Description de l'Armenie, la Perse et la Mesopotamie, publiee sous les auspices des ministres de l'interieur et de l'instruction publique. Partie 1-2. Paris: Firmin Didot freres, 1842-52. 2 v. f deg.. †††*ON ---- Itineraires en Armenie, en Kurdistan et en Perse. (Societe de geographie. Bulletin. Paris, 1843. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 20, p. 229-249.) KAA ---- Notice sur Erzeroum, fragment d'un journal de voyage, 1839-1840. (Societe de geographie. Bulletin. Paris, 1843. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 20, p. 213-228.) KAA ---- Notice geographique sur le Kourdistan. (Societe de geographie. Bulletin. Paris, 1844. 8 deg.. serie 3, v. 1, p. 282-314.) KAA ---- Renseignements archeologiques et geographiques sur quelques points de l'Asie-Mineure, de l'Armenie et de la Perse. (Societe de geographie. Bulletin. Paris, 1841. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 15, p. 26-38.) KAA Thielmann, Max Franz Guido, Freiherr von. Le Caucase, la Perse et la Turquie d'Asie d'apres la relation de M. le baron de Thielmann par le baron Ernouf. Paris: E. Plon et Cie., 1876. 2 p.l., 368 p., 1 map, 16 pl. 12 deg.. BBV ---- Journey in the Caucasus, Persia, and Turkey in Asia. Translated by Charles Heneage. London: John Murray, 1875. 2 v. 8 deg.. BBV Tozer, Henry Fanshawe. Turkish Armenia and eastern Asia Minor. London: Longmans, Green, and Co., 1881. xiv p., 1 l., 470 p., 1 map, 5 pl. 8 deg.. BBY Trezel. See Jaubert, Pierre A. Trowbridge, Tillman C. Armenia and the Armenians. [New Haven, 1874.] 15 p. 8 deg.. ZNG p.v.4 Repr.: New Englander, v. 33, p. 1-15, *DA. Tschihatscheff, P. v. See Chikhachov, Piotr Aleksandrovich. Turkey--a past and a future. 2 maps. (Round table. New York, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 7, p. 515-546.) SEA Ubicini, Jean Henri Abdolonyme. Les Armeniens. (In his: Lettres sur la Turquie. Paris: J. Dumaine, 1853-54. 12 deg.. partie 2, p. 243-347.) GIO Ussher, Clarence Douglas. An American physician in Turkey; a narrative of adventures in peace and in war, by Clarence D. Ussher, M.D., Grace H. Knapp, collaborating.... Boston and New York: Houghton Mifflin Company, 1917. xiv p., 1 l., 339 p., 1 map, 16 pl. 8 deg.. WZO Ussher, John. A journey from London to Persepolis; including wanderings in Daghestan, Georgia, Armenia, Kurdistan, Mesopotamia and Persia. London: Hurst & Blackett, 1865. 1 p.l., v-xiii p., 2 l., 3-703 p., 18 pl. 4 deg.. Stuart 6705 and †BCR Valentin, Jean. See Radde, Gustav. Vecchi, Felice de. Escursione lungo il teatro della guerra attuale dal Danubio alle regioni caucasee. Brano d'un viaggio nell' Armenia, Persia, Arabia ed Indostan fatto negli anni 1841, 42 da F. de Vecchi e G. Osculati, descritto da F. de Vecchi. Milano: C. Wilmant, 1854. 4 p.l., 12-203 p., 5 pl. 4 deg.. †GIO Villari, Luigi. Fire and sword in the Caucasus. London: T. F. Unwin, 1906. 347 p., 64 pl. 8 deg.. *R-GMV ---- The land of Ararat. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 265-267.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Fire and sword in the Caucasus. A Visit to Mount Ararat. (Fraser's magazine. London, 1859. 8 deg.. v. 60, p. 111-121.) *DA Vivien de Saint Martin, Louis. Note sur le site d'Armavir, la plus ancienne cite royale de l'Armenie. Sur le site de l'ancienne Artaxata. (Nouvelles annales des voyages. Paris, 1852. 8 deg.. serie 5, tome 32, p. 180-199.) KAA Vizetelly, Edward. A winter ride in Armenia. (English illustrated magazine. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 15, p. 135-141.) *DA Volland. Beitraege zur Ethnographie der Bewohner von Armenien und Kurdistan. (Archiv fuer Anthropologie. Braunschweig, 1909. 4 deg.. Neue Folge, Bd. 8, p. 183-196.) QOA Von Trapezunt nach Erzerum. (Globus. Braunschweig, 1875. f deg.. Bd. 27, p. 209-215, 225-232.) †KAA Vorlaeufiger Bericht ueber die im Jahre 1875 ausgefuehrten Reisen in Kaukasien und dem armenischen Hochlande von Dr. G. Radde und Dr. G. Sievers. (Petermanns Mittheilungen. Gotha, 1876. 4 deg.. Bd. 22, p. 139-152.) KAA Wagner, M. Mittheilungen eines deutschen Reisenden aus dem russischen Armenien. (Ausland: Stuttgart, 1846. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 19, p. 425-427, 430-431, 441-443, 446-447, 450-452, 454-455, 458-460, 461-463.) †KAA Westarp, Eberhard Joachim, Graf von. Routenaufnahmen in Armenien und Kurdistan. 1 map. (Petermanns Mitteilungen. Gotha, 1913. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 59, Halbband 2, p. 297-300.) KAA ---- Unter Halbmond und Sonne; im Sattel durch die asiatische Tuerkei und Persien. Berlin: H. Paetel Verlag [1913]. vii, 326 p., 1 map, 29 pl. 2. ed. 8 deg.. (Allgemeiner Verein fuer deutsche Literatur. Veroeffentlichungen. Bd. 3, Abt. 38.) BBS Who are the Armenians? (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 7, p. 47-51.) †*ONK Wilbraham, Richard. Travels in the Trans-Caucasian provinces of Russia, and along the southern shore of the lakes of Van and Urumiah in the autumn and winter of 1837. London: John Murray, 1839. 2 p.l., vii-xviii, 477 p., 1 map, 5 pl. 8 deg.. BBV and Stuart 6846 Wilson, Sir C. W. See Handbook for travellers in Asia Minor. Wuensch, Josef. Meine Reise in Armenien und Kurdistan. (Kaiserlich Koeniglich geographische Gesellschaft. Mittheilungen. Wien, 1883. 8 deg.. Bd. 26, p. 487-496, 513-520.) KAA ---- Die Quelle des westlichen Tigrisarmes und der See Goelldschik. (Kaiserlich Koeniglich geographische Gesellschaft. Mittheilungen. Wien, 1885. 8 deg.. Bd. 28, p. 1-21.) KAA Yorke, Vincent W. A journey in the valley of the upper Euphrates. (Geographical journal. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 8, p. 317-335, 453-474.) KAA Zimmerer, H. Armenien. (Asien. Berlin, 1902. f deg.. Jahrg. 1, p. 6-9, 27-31, 71-74.) †BBA Zouche (14. baron), Robert Curzon. Armenia: a year at Erzeroom, and on the frontiers of Russia, Turkey and Persia. London: J. Murray, 1854. 1 p.l., iii-xiv, 253 p., 1 map, 5 pl. 3. ed. 8 deg.. BBY ---- ---- New York: Harper & Bros., 1854. 1 p.l., v-xiv p., 1 l., 17-226 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. BBY ARCHAEOLOGY Abich, Hermann. Sur les ruines d'Ani. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin: Classe historico-philologique. St. Petersbourg, 1845. f deg.. v. 2, col. 369-376.) *QCB Adadourian, Haig. The Armenian coat of arms and the truths it displays. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 8-10.) *ONK Archaeologische Bemerkungen ueber Armenien. (Ausland. Stuttgart, 1841. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 14, p. 544, 547-548, 551-552, 556.) †KAA Bachmann, Walter. Kirchen und Moscheen in Armenien und Kurdistan. Leipzig: J. C. Hinrichs, 1913. 2 p.l., 80 p., 1 map, 1 plan, 70 pl. f deg.. (Deutsche Orient-Gesellschaft. Wissenschaftliche Veroeffentlichungen. Heft 25.) †*OAA Belck, Waldemar. Archaeologische Forschungen in Armenien. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1893. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1893, p. 61-82.) QOA ---- Armenien im Altertum und in der Jetztzeit. (Frankfurter Verein fuer Geographie und Statistik. Jahresbericht. Frankfurt am Main, 1901. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 64-65, p. 127-137.) KAA ---- Armenische Expedition. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1898. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1898, p. 414-416.) QOA ---- Aus den Berichten ueber die armenische Expedition. (Zeitschrift fuer Ethnologie. Berlin, 1899. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 31, p. 236-275.) QOA ---- Das Reich der Mannaeer. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1894. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1894, p. 479-487.) QOA ---- Die Rusas-Stele von Topsanae (Sidikan). Briefliche Mittheilungen des Hrn. Dr. W. Belck an Hrn. Rud. Virchow. (Zeitschrift fuer Ethnologie. Berlin, 1899. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 31, p. 99-132.) QOA ---- Untersuchungen und Reisen in Transkaukasien, Hoch-Armenien und Kurdistan. (Globus. Braunschweig, 1893. f deg.. Bd. 63. p. 349-352, 369-374; Bd. 64, p. 153-158, 196-202.) †KAA ---- See also Roesler, Emil, and Waldemar Belck. Belck, Waldemar, and F. F. K. Lehmann-Haupt. Bericht ueber die armenische Forschungsreise der W. Belck und C. F. Lehmann. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1900. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1900, p. 29-66.) QOA ---- Bericht ueber eine Forschungsreise durch Armenien. (Koeniglich Preussische Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte. Berlin, 1899. 4 deg.. 1899, p. 116-120.) *EE ---- Reisebriefe von der armenischen Expedition. (Geographische Gesellschaft in Hamburg. Mittheilungen. Hamburg, 1899-1900. 8 deg.. Bd. 15, p. 1-23, 189-221; Bd. 16, p. 16-70.) KAA ---- Vorlaeufiger Bericht ueber die im Jahre 1898 erzielten Ergebnisse einer Forschungsreise durch Armenien. (Koenigliche Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu Goettingen. Nachrichten: Philol.-hist. Klasse. Goettingen, 1899. 8 deg.. 1899, p. 80-86.) *EE ---- Weiterer Bericht ueber die armenische Expedition. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1898. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1898, p. 522-527.) QOA ---- Zweiter Vorbericht ueber eine Forschungsreise in Armenien. (Koeniglich Preussische Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte. Berlin, 1899. 4 deg.. 1899, p. 745-749.) *EE Cumont, Eugene. See Cumont, Franz, and Eugene Cumont. Cumont, Franz, and Eugene Cumont. Voyage d'exploration archeologique dans le Pont et la Petite Armenie. [Bruxelles: H. Lamertin, 1906.] 105-375 p., 19 maps. sq. 8 deg.. (Studia Pontica. [v. 2.]) *ONM Dwight, Harrison Gray Otis. Armenian traditions about Mt. Ararat. (American Oriental Society. Journal. New York, 1856. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 189-191.) *OAA Dzotsikian, S. M. Aus ma Ani Kaghakin. [An account of the city of Ani.] New York, 1914. 40 p. 8 deg.. *ONK Hin havadk gam hetanosagan gronk Hahots. [Ancient belief or the pagan religion of Armenia.] Venice, 1910. 4 p.l., 557 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. *ONP Hittite--Armenian? A theory. (Ararat. London, 1914. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 34-39.) *ONK Huntington, Ellsworth. Mittheilungen aus englischen Briefen des Hrn. Ellsworth Huntington ueber armenische Alterthuemer. [Uebersetzt von C. F. Lehmann.] (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1900. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1900, p. 140-152.) QOA ---- Weitere Berichte ueber Forschungen in Armenien und Commagene. [Uebersetzt von C. F. Lehmann.] (Zeitschrift fuer Ethnologie. Berlin, 1901. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 33, p. 173-209.) QOA Injijian, Ghougas. Hnakhosoutiun. [Armenian antiquities.] Venice, 1835. 3 v. 4 deg.. *ONM Kachouni, Manouel. Hnakhosoutiun Hahasdani. [An abridgement for schools of Ghougas Injijian's Hnakhosoutiun.] Venice, 1855. 3 p.l., 303 p. 16 deg.. *ONM Jensen, Peter. Hittiter und Armenier. Strassburg: K. J. Truebner, 1898. xxvi, 256 p., 1 map, 10 tables. 8 deg.. *OCZE Khanikof, N. Voyage a Ani, capitale de l'Armenie, sous les Bagratides. (Revue archeologique. Paris, 1858. 8 deg.. v. 15, p. 401-420.) MTA Krahmer, D. Die altarmenische Hauptstadt Ani. (Globus. Braunschweig, 1895. f deg.. v. 68, p. 263-267.) †KAA Langlois, Victor. Fragment d'un voyage en Cilicie. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1857. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 5, p. 1-9.) *OAA ---- Les monuments de la Cilicie aux differentes epoques. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1861. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 13, p. 102-113.) *OAA ---- Rapport sur l'exploration archeologique de la Cilicie et de la Petite-Armenie... Paris: Imprimerie imperiale, 1854. 55 p., 1 pl. 8 deg.. *C p.v.1356 ---- Les ruines de Lampron en Cilicie. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1860. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 12, p. 119-122.) *OAA Lehmann-Haupt, Ferdinand Friedrich Karl. Bericht ueber den von ihm erledigten Abschnitt der armenischen Expedition: Reise von Rowanduz bis Alaschgert. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1899. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1899, p. 586-614.) QOA ---- Von der deutschen armenischen Expedition. (Wiener Zeitschrift fuer die Kunde des Morgenlandes. Wien, 1900. 8 deg.. Bd. 14, p. 1-45.) *OAA ---- Weiterer Bericht ueber den Fortgang der armenischen Expedition. (Zeitschrift fuer Ethnologie. Berlin, 1899. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 31, p. 281-290.) QOA ---- See also Belck, Waldemar, and F. F. K. Lehmann-Haupt; also Huntington, Ellsworth. Morgan, Jacques Jean Marie de. Mission scientifique au Caucase, etudes archeologiques & historiques. Paris: E. Leroux, 1889. 2 v. in 1. 4 deg.. QPX Tome 1. Les premiers ages des metaux dans l'Armenie russe. Tome 2. Recherches sur les origines des peuples du Caucase. ---- Note sur les necropoles prehistoriques de l'Armenie russe. (Revue archeologique. Paris, 1890. 8 deg.. serie 3, v. 16, p. 176-202.) MTA ---- Note sur l'usage du systeme ponderal assyrien dans l'Armenie russe, a l'epoque prehistorique. (Revue archeologique. Paris, 1889. 8 deg.. serie 3, v. 14, p. 177-187.) MTA ---- Les stations prehistoriques de l'Alagheuz (Armenie russe). (Revue de l'Ecole d'anthropologie de Paris. Paris, 1909. 8 deg.. annee 19, p. 189-203.) QOA Murad, Friedrich. Ararat und Masis. Studien zur armenischen Altertumskunde und Litteratur. Heidelberg: C. Winter, 1901. 2 p.l., 104 p. 8 deg.. *ONM Roesler, Emil, and Waldemar Belck. Archaeologische Thaetigkeit im Jahre 1893 in Transkaukasien. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1894. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1894, p. 213-241.) QOA Saint-Martin, Jean Antoine. Notice sur le voyage litteraire de M. Schulz en Orient, et sur les decouvertes qu'il a faites recemment dans les ruines de la ville de Semiramis en Armenie. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1828. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 2, p. 161-188.) *OAA Schulz, Ed. See Saint-Martin, Jean Antoine. Spiegel, Friedrich. Eranische Alterthumskunde. Leipzig: W. Engelmann, 1871-78. 3 v. 8 deg.. *OM Tcheraz, Minas. Homere et les Armeniens. (Melanges Charles de Harlez. Leyde, 1896. 4 deg.. p. 303-306.) *OAC The Temple of Muzazir in Armenia. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1905. 8 deg.. 1905, p. 362-363.) *OAA Virchow, Rudolf. Entdeckungen in Armenien. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1898. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1898, p. 568-592.) QOA ---- Forschungsreise unserer armenischen Expedition Belck-Lehmann. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1899. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1899, p. 411-420.) QOA ---- Ueber die armenische Expedition Belck-Lehmann. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1899. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1899, p. 487-489, 579-586.) QOA ---- Ueber den Ursprung der Bronzecultur und ueber die armenische Expedition. (Deutsche Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Correspondenz-Blatt. Muenchen, 1899. 4 deg.. Bd. 30, p. 146-150.) QOA ---- ---- (Anthropologische Gesellschaft in Wien. Mittheilungen. Sitzungsberichte. Wien, 1900. 4 deg.. Bd. 30, p. 80-84.) QOA ---- See also Belck, Waldemar. NUMISMATICS Brosset, Marie Felicite. Monographie des monnaies armeniennes. 2 pl. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin scientifique. St. Petersbourg, 1840. f deg.. tome 6, col. 33-64.) *QCB Langlois, Victor. Lettre a M. Ch. Lenormant ... sur les monnaies des rois armeniens de la dynastie de Roupene. (Revue archeologique. Paris, 1850. 8 deg.. annee 7, p. 262-275, 357-368, 416-426.) MTA ---- Numismatique de l'Armenie [dans l'antiquite]. 6 p.l., xx, 87 p., 6 pl. (In: Bibliotheque historique armenienne; ou, Choix des principaux historiens armeniens traduits en francais par Edouard Dulaurier. Paris: C. Rollin, 1859. 4 deg..) †MHM ---- Numismatique de l'Armenie au moyen age. Paris: C. Rollin, 1855. xii, 110 p., 7 pl. 4 deg.. MIL Soret, Frederic. Numismatique de l'Armenie au moyen-age. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1855. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 2, p. 66-74.) *OAA Marcar, Samuel. Description of a copper coin of Leo, king of Armenia. (Madras journal of literature and science. Madras, 1853. 8 deg.. v. 17, p. 151-155.) *OHA Mohammed-bey. Lettre a M. Victor Langlois sur la legende arabe d'une monnaie bilingue d'Hethum, roi chretien d'Armenie. (Revue archeologique. Paris, 1850. 8 deg.. annee 7, p. 220-223.) MTA Sibilian, Clement. Numismatique armenienne. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1860. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 12, p. 193-205.) *OAA ---- Ueber 17 unedirte Muenzen der armenisch-rubenischen Dynastie in Kilikien. 3 pl. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Classe. Wien, 1852. 8 deg.. Bd. 8, p. 275-300.) *EF ART Abdullah, Seraphin, and Frederic Macler. Etudes sur le miniature armenienne. 3 facs., 2 pl. (Revue des etudes ethnographiques et sociologiques. Paris, 1909. 4 deg.. 1909, p. 280-302, 345-366.) QOA Alishanian, Gheuont. Zartangark avedarani mlke Takouhuoh. [On the decorations of the manuscript of the Gospels called mlke Takouhuoh.] Venice, 1902. 12 p., 6 facs., 10 pl. f deg.. ††*ONN Ayvazian, Hovhannes, dzovangarich hishadagau hisnamiah kordzouneoutian. [Hovhannes Ayvazian, marine painter. Souvenir of his fifty years activity.] Venice, 1898. 7 p. 4 deg.. †*ONP Basmadjian, K. J. Armenia, the home of Grecian architecture. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 9, p. 21-22.) †*ONK Boyajian, Zabelle C., compiler. Armenian legends and poems, illustrated & compiled by Zabelle C. Boyajian ... with an introduction by the Right Hon. Viscount Bryce ... and a contribution on "Armenia: its epics, folksongs and mediaeval poetry," by Aram Raffi. London: J. M. Dent & Sons, Ltd. [1916.] xvi, 195 p., 12 col'd pl. f deg.. †*ONP Bryce (1. viscount), James Bryce. See Boyajian, Zabelle C., compiler. Coulon, Henri. L'art et l'Armenie. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 410-413.) *ONK Gegharvest (L'art). Revue litteraire et artistique armenienne. Directeur-redacteur: G. Levonian. 1913, no. 5. Tiflis, 1913. f deg.. †*ONK Levonian, G. See Gegharvest. Macler, Frederic. Miniatures armeniennes. Vies du Christ, peintures ornementales (Xe au XVIIe siecle). Paris: P. Geuthner, 1913. 2 p.l., 44 p., 68 pl. f deg.. †*ISM ---- See also Abdullah, Seraphin, and Frederic Macler. Marshall, Annie C. Armenian embroideries. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 3, no. 1, p. 8-12.) †*ONK Mauclair, Camille. Vartan Mahokian, the Armenian marine painter. (From the French of Camille Mauclair.) (New Armenia. New York, 1918. 4 deg.. v. 10, p. 165-168.) †*ONK Raffi, Aram. See Boyajian, Zabelle C., compiler. Stuart-Browne, D. M. Armenian exhibits in the Victoria and Albert Museum. (Ararat. London, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 317-320, 350-355.) *ONK Wartabet, Zaven. Tebi kegharvesti haireniku. [A visit to the fatherland of art. A treatise on the art and architecture of Constantinople and parts of Asia Minor.] Baku, 1910. 149 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONP HISTORY GENERAL WORKS See also Massacres Abaza, V. A. Istoriia Armenii. St. Petersburg: I. Skorokhodov, 1888. ix, 128 p. 8 deg.. *QB History of Armenia. Abbruzzese, Antonio. Le relazioni fra l'Impero Romano e l'Armenia, a tempo di Augusto, 30 a. C.--14 d. C. (Rivista di storia antica. Padova, 1903-04. 8 deg.. nuova serie, anno 7, p. 505-521, 722-734; anno 8, p. 32-61.) BAA ---- Le relazioni fra l'Impero Romano e l'Armenia a tempo di Tiberio e di Caligola. (Bessarione. Roma, 1907. 8 deg.. serie 3, v. 2, p. 63-106.) *OAA ---- Le relazioni politiche fra l'Impero Romano e l'Armenia da Claudio a Traiano.... (Bessarione. Roma, 1911. 8 deg.. serie 3, v. 8, p. 389-434.) *OAA Abdullah, Seraphin. Verification d'une date de l'ere armenienne [894 ere chretienne]. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1914. 8 deg.. serie 11, v. 3, p. 645-651.) *OAA Achguerd, K. S. See Nerses, patriarch of Constantinople. Adontz, N. Armeniia v epokhu Iustiniana. Politicheskoe sostoianie na osnovie Nakhararskago stroia. St. Petersburg: Tip. Imperatorskoi Akademii Nauk, 1908. xiv, 526 p. 4 deg.. *QG Armenia in the age of Justinian. Agathangelos. Agathange. Histoire du regne de Tiridate et de la predication de Saint Gregoire l'illuminateur, traduite pour la premiere fois en francais sur le texte armenien accompagne de la version grecque, par Victor Langlois. (In: Victor Langlois, Collection des historiens anciens et modernes de l'Armenie. Paris, 1867. 4 deg.. v. 1, p. 97-194.) †*ONQ ---- Agathangelus neu hrsg. von Paul de Lagarde. (Koenigliche Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu Goettingen. Abhandlungen. Goettingen, 1889. 4 deg.. Bd. 35, p. 3-88.) *EE ---- Badmoutiun. [A history of Armenia; together with sermons by Gregory the Illuminator.] Venice, 1862. 678 p. 24 deg.. *ONQ Lagarde, Paul Anton de. Erlaeuterungen zu Agathangelus und den Akten Gregors von Armenien. (Koenigliche Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu Goettingen. Abhandlungen. Goettingen, 1889. 4 deg.. Bd. 35, p. 121-163.) *EE Meillet, Antoine. Remarques sur le texte de l'historien armenien Agathange. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1910. 8 deg.. serie 10, v. 16, p. 457-481.) *OAA Sarkisian, H. Parsek. Akatankeghos ev ur Pazmatarian kaghdnikn. [A critique of Agathangelos and his Pazmatarian kaghdnikn.] Venice, 1890. 14, 416 p. 8 deg.. *ONQ Akulian, Aram. Einverleibung armenischer Territorien durch Byzanz im xi. Jahrhundert; ein Beitrag zur vorseldschukischen Periode der armenischen Geschichte. Grueningen: J. Wirz, 1912. 94 p. 8 deg.. *ONK p.v.2. 'Ali ibn Abi Talib, caliph. See Avtaliantz, John, baron. Allen, E. See Stuermer, Harry. Amfiteatrov, Aleksandr Valentinovich. Armeniia i Rim. Petrograd: "Prosvyeshcheniye" [1896]. 3 p.l., 361 p. 12 deg.. *QG Armenia and Rome. Apcar, Diana. The Turkish constitution and Armenia. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 1, p. 6-7.) †*ONK Arakel of Tabriz. See Brosset, Marie Felicite. Arakelian, H. Les rapports des Armeniens avec l'Occident au moyen age et apres. (Verhandlungen des XIII. internationalen Orientalisten-Kongresses. Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1904. 8 deg.. p. 369-371.) *OAA Arisdagues de Lasdiverd. Histoire d'Armenie par le vartabed Arisdagues de Lasdiverd traduite pour la premiere fois sur l'edition des ... Mekhitharistes de Saint-Lazare et accompagnee de notes par M. Evariste Prud'homme. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1863-64. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 15, p. 343-370; tome 16, p. 41-59, 159-184, 268-286, 289-318; tome 17, p. 5-33.) *OAA Armenian Huntchakist Party.--Central Committee. A memorial to the powers. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 8, p. 3-5.) †*ONK The Armenian people and the Ottoman government. From the English Blue Book. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 157-159.) †*ONK The Armenians. (Armenia. Boston, 1904-05. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 2, p. 12-18; no. 3, p. 17-27; no. 4, p. 29-40.) †*ONK Die Armenischen Unruhen und die Plaene auf Einfuehrung von Reformen in der Tuerkei. (Das Staatsarchiv. Sammlung der officiellen Actenstuecke zur Geschichte der Gegenwart. Leipzig, 1897. 8 deg.. Bd. 59, p. 168-308.) XBA L'Armeno-Veneto. Compendio storico e documenti delle relazioni degli Armeni coi Veneziani. Primo periodo, secoli XIII-XIV. Parte 1-2. Venezia: Stab. tip. armeno, S. Lazzaro, 1893. 8 deg.. BBX Parte 1. Compendio storico. Parte 2. Documenti. Arzanov, D. Zamiechaniia ob Armenii i Armianakh (Viestnik Evropy. Moscow, 1824. 8 deg.. 1824. no. 5-6, p. 241-247.) *QCA Notes about Armenia and the Armenians. ---- Istoricheskii vzgliad na Armeniiu i Georgiiu. (Viestnik Evropy. Moscow, 1825. 8 deg.. 1825, no. 7-8, p. 15-33.) *QCA Historical sketch of Armenia and Georgia. Aslan, Kevork. Etudes historiques sur le peuple armenien. Paris: G. Dujarric, 1909. 2 p.l., viii-xxv p., 1 l., 28-339 p. 8 deg.. BBX Aucher, John Baptist. See Eusebius Pamphilus, bishop of Caesarea. Aukerian, Megerdich. See Eusebius Pamphilus, bishop of Caesarea. Avdall, Johannes. See Avtaliantz, John. Avtaliantz, John, baron. A covenant of Ali, fourth caliph of Baghdad, granting certain immunities and privileges to the Armenian nation. (Asiatic Society of Bengal. Journal. Calcutta, 1870. 8 deg.. v. 39, part 1, p. 60-64.) *OHA ---- Memoir of a Hindu colony in ancient Armenia. By Johannes Avdall. (Asiatic Society of Bengal. Journal. Calcutta, 1836. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 331-339.) *OHA ---- Note on the origin of the Armenian era, and the reformation of the Haican kalendar. (Asiatic Society of Bengal. Journal. Calcutta, 1836. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 384-387.) *OHA ---- Singular narrative of the Armenian king Arsaces and his contemporary Sapor, king of Persia; extracted from the Armenian chronicles. (Asiatic Society of Bengal. Journal. Calcutta, 1837. 8 deg.. v. 6, p. 81-87.) *OHA ---- See also Chamchian, Michael; also Moses of Chorene. Basmadjian, K. J. Histoire moderne des Armeniens, depuis la chute du royaume jusqu'a nos jours (1375-1916); les guerres russo-turques, les guerres russo-persanes, les guerres perso-turques, les soulevements des Armeniens, la question d'Orient et principalement la question armenienne.... Preface par J. de Morgan. Paris: J. Gamber, 1917. viii, 174 p., 1 l., 1 map. 12 deg.. *ONQ ---- Les Lusignans de Poitou au trone de la Petite Armenie. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1906. 8 deg.. serie 10, v. 7, p. 520-524.) *OAA ---- A survey of ancient Armenian history. (New Armenia. New York, 1918. f deg.. v. 10, p. 38-39.) †*ONK Baynes, Norman H. Rome and Armenia in the fourth century. (English historical review. London, 1910. 8 deg.. v. 25, p. 625-643.) BAA Bedrosian, Sahag. See Vahram of Edessa. Berberov, R. Die Armenier. (In: Russen ueber Russland. Frankfurt a. M., 1906. 8 deg.. p. 640-655.) GLY Berchem, Max van. See Lehmann-Haupt, Ferdinand Friedrich Karl. Bicknell, Ernest Percy. Red Cross and Red Crescent. (Survey. New York, 1916. 4 deg.. v.37, p. 118-121.) SHA Blackwell, Alice Stone. The battle of Avarair. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 4, p. 18-23.) †*ONK Bogdanov, Artemy. Memoirs of the life of Artemi, of Wagarschapat, near Mount Ararat in Armenia: from the original Armenian [or rather Russian] written by himself. London: Treuttel & Wuertz, 1822. x, 374 p., 1 pl. 8 deg.. BBX Brosset, Marie Felicite. Des historiens armeniens des XVIIe et XVIIIe siecles. Arakel de Tauriz, registre chronologique, annote par M. Brosset. 1 p.l., 60 p. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Memoires. St. Petersbourg, 1873. f deg.. tome 19, no. 5.) *QCB ---- Etudes sur l'historien armenien Mkhithar d'Airivank, XIIIe s.; Ire et IIe parties, de la creation du monde au commencement de l'ere chretienne; IIIe partie, jusqu'en 1289 de J.-C. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1865. f deg.. tome 8, col. 391-416.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1868. tome 5, p. 315-350, *OAA. ---- Etudes sur l'historien armenien Oukhtanes, Xe s. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1869. f deg.. tome 13, col. 401-454.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1873. tome 6, p. 13-89, *OAA. ---- Examen d'un passage de l'historien armenien Oukhtanes, relatif a la pretendue conquete "de l'Iberie" par Nabuchodonosor. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1869. f deg.. tome 13, col. 248-260.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1868. tome 5, p. 742-760, *OAA. ---- Listes chronologiques des princes et metropolites de la Siounie, jusqu'a la fin du XIIIe siecle. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1862. f deg.. tome 4, col. 497-562.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863. tome 4, p. 501-592, *OAA. ---- Notice sur l'historien armenien Thoma Ardzrouni, Xe siecle. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1863. f deg.. tome 5, col. 538-554; tome 6, col. 69-102.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863. tome 4, p. 686-709, 716-763, *OAA. ---- Notice des manuscrits armeniens appartenant a la bibliotheque de l'Institut asiatique etabli pres le Ministere des Affaires Etrangeres. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin scientifique. St. Petersbourg, 1838. f deg.. tome 3, col. 21-26, 36-41.) *QCB ---- Projet d'une collection d'historiens armeniens inedits. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin scientifique. St. Petersbourg, 1841-42. f deg.. v. 8, col. 177-189; v. 9, col. 253-268.) *QCB ---- Revue de la litterature historique de l'Armenie. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1877. f deg.. tome 22, col. 303-312.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1881. tome 8, p. 21-34, *OAA. ---- Sur l'histoire ancienne de l'Armenie, d'apres les textes hieroglyphiques et cuneiformes. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1871. f deg.. tome 16, col. 332-340.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1873. tome 6, p. 389-400, *OAA. ---- Sur l'histoire composee en armenien par Thoma Ardzrouni, Xe s. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1870. f deg.. tome 14, col. 428-432.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1873. tome 6, p. 226-232, *OAA. Browne, J. Gordon. Tartars and Armenians. (Contemporary review. London, 1906. 8 deg.. v. 89, p. 72-85.) *DA Brunhes, Jean. Le role ancien de l'Armenie. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 593-599.) *ONK Bryce (1. viscount), James Bryce. See Buxton, Noel, and Harold Buxton; also Hacobian, Avetoon Pesak. Budushcheye ustroistvo Armenii ... Budushchee ustroistvo Armenii po offitsiad'nym diplomaticheskim dokumentam Oranzhevoi knigi, traktuiushei reform v Armenii. Petrograd: "Osvobozhdeniye," 1915. 94 p. 8 deg.. (Diplomaticheskii Arkhiv. tom 8.) *QG p.v.57 The future of Armenia, according to diplomatic documents. Burchardi, Gustav. Der Zweifel und das Boese. Eine Botschaft der Sasaniden an die Armenier. (Geist des Ostens. Muenchen, 1914. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1, p. 428-438.) *OAA Buxton, Harold. See Buxton, Noel, and Harold Buxton. Buxton, Noel, and Harold Buxton. Travel and politics in Armenia, with an introduction by Viscount Bryce and a contribution on Armenian history and culture by Aram Raffi. New York: Macmillan Co., 1914. xx, 274 p., 1 map, 16 pl. 12 deg.. BBY Cappelletti, Giuseppe. L'Armenia. Firenze: Stamperia e fonderia Fabris, 1841. 3 v. in 1. 8 deg.. BBY ---- See also Elisha, vartabed. Carlier, Emilie. En Armenie. Journal de la femme d'un consul de France. (Revue des deux mondes. Paris, 1903. 8 deg.. periode 5, v. 13, p. 406-433.) *DM Chahan de Cirbied, Jacques. Details sur la situation actuelle du royaume de Perse. Paris: Imprimerie royale, 1816. 12 l. 4 deg.. *OMZ Armenian, French and Persian texts. ---- Memoire sur le gouvernement et sur la religion des anciens Armeniens, par M. Cirbied. (Societe royale des antiquaires de France. Memoires. Paris, 1820. 8 deg.. tome 2, p. 262-311.) DA Chahnazarian, Garabed V. See Ghevont, vartabed. Chakijian, Ephrem. Badmoutiun hahots. [A history of Armenia.] Vienna, 1851. 5 p.l., 18, 484 p. 12 deg.. *ONQ Chakmakjian, H. H. Armenia's place in the family of nations. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 306-309.) *ONK ---- Badmoutiun hahots. [The political history of the Armenian people from ancient times down to 1914, together with a short account of Armenian literature.] Boston, 1917. 4 p.l., 692 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. *ONQ Chalathianz, Gregor. See Khalathianz, Grigori Abramovich. Chalatiantz, B. See Khalathianz, Bagrat. Chamchian, Michael. Badmoutiun hahots. [A history of Armenia from the creation to the end of the eighteenth century.] Venice, 1784-86. 3 v. 4 deg.. *ONQ ---- History of Armenia by Father Michael Chamich; from B. C. 2247 to the year of Christ 1780, or 1229 of the Armenian era, translated from the original Armenian by Johannes Avdall. To which is appended a continuation of the history by the translator from the year 1780 to the present date. Calcutta: H. Townsend, 1827. 2 v. 8 deg.. *ONQ Chantre, Ernest. Les Armeniens, esquisse historique et ethnographique. (Societe d'anthropologie de Lyon. Bulletin. Lyon, 1897. 8 deg.. v. 15, p. 49-101.) QOA Chesney, Francis Rawdon. The Russo-Turkish campaigns of 1828 and 1829 with a view of the present state of affairs in the East. With an appendix containing the diplomatic correspondence between the four powers, and the secret correspondence between the Russian and English governments. New York: Redfield, 1854. 1 p.l., xiii-xxiv, 25-360 p., 2 maps. 12 deg.. GLK Chesney, G. M. A winter campaign in Armenia. (Fortnightly review. London, 1916. 8 deg.. new series, v. 99, p. 99-111.) *DA Clark, William. Armenian history. (New Englander. New Haven, 1863. 8 deg.. v. 22, p. 507-529, 672-691.) *DA Constitution nationale des Armeniens traduite de l'armenien sur le document original par M. E. Prud'homme. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1861-62. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 14, p. 1-18, 89-107.) *OAA Coumryantz, A. See Vogel, Charles, and A. Coumryantz. The Cradle of history. (Eclectic magazine. New York, 1859. 8 deg.. 1859, p. 248-259.) *DA Daghbaschean, H. Gruendung des Bagratidenreiches durch Aschot Bagratuni. Berlin: Mayer & Mueller, 1893. xi p., 1 l., 106 p. 8 deg.. BBX Des Coursons, R. de, vicomte. La rebellion armenienne; son origine, son but. Paris: Librairie du Service central de la presse, 1895. 102 p. 8 deg.. BBH p.v.2 Desimoni, Cornelio. Actes passes en 1271, 1274 et 1279 a l'Aias (Petite Armenie) et a Beyrouth par devant des notaires genois. (Societe de l'Orient latin. Archives de l'Orient latin. Paris, 1881. 8 deg.. tome 1, p. 434-534.) *OBA Dolens, Noel, and A. Khatch. Histoire des anciens Armeniens. Publie par l'Union des etudiants armeniens de l'Europe. Geneve, 1907. 226 p. 8 deg.. BBX Dulaurier, Edouard. Considerations sur les plus anciennes origines de l'histoire armenienne. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1860. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 11, p. 93-109.) *OAA ---- Litterature armenienne. Bibliotheque historique armenienne; ou, Choix et extraits des historiens armeniens. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1856. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 3, p. 95-106.) *OAA ---- Recherches sur la chronologie armenienne technique et historique; ouvrage formant les prolegomenes de la collection intitulee Bibliotheque historique armenienne. Tome 1. Paris: Imprimerie imperiale, 1859. 4 deg.. †*ONQ Tome 1. Chronologie technique. ---- See also Matthew of Edessa; also Michael I., patriarch of the Jacobites. Egli, Emil. Feldzuege in Armenien, von 41-63 n. Chr. Ein Beitrag zur Kritik des Tacitus. (In: Max Buedinger, Untersuchungen zur roemischen Kaisergeschichte. Leipzig, 1868. 8 deg.. Bd. 1, p. 265-363.) BWH Eliot, Sir Charles Norton Edgecumbe. Turkey in Europe. London: E. Arnold, 1908. vii, 459 p., 2 folded maps. new ed. 8 deg.. *OPQ Elisha, vartabed. Yeghishei Vartabedi vasn Vartanah yev Hahots baderazmin. [Elisha on Vartan and the battle of the Armenians.] Venice, 1852. 394 p., 1 pl. 32 deg.. *ONQ ---- ---- Venice, 1864. 394 p., 1 pl. 24 deg.. *ONQ ---- The history of Vartan, and of the battle of the Armenians: containing an account of the religious wars between the Persians and Armenians; by Elisaeus, bishop of the Arnadunians. Translated from the Armenian by C. F. Neumann. London: Oriental Translation Fund, 1830. 1 p.l., xxiv, 111 p. 4 deg.. †*OAG ---- Histoire de Vartan et de la guerre des Armeniens. Traduction nouvelle accompagnee de notes historiques et critiques par Victor Langlois. (In: Victor Langlois, Collection des historiens anciens et modernes de l'Armenie. Paris, 1869. 4 deg.. tome 2, p. 177-251.) †*ONQ ---- Eliseo, storico armeno del quinto secolo, versione del prete Giuseppe Cappelletti. Venezia: Tipografia di Alvisopoli, 1840. 240 p. 8 deg.. BBX ---- Soulevement national de l'Armenie chretienne au Ve siecle, contre la loi de Zoroastre, sous le commandement du Prince Vartan le Mamigonien. Ouvrage ecrit par Elisee Vartabed, contemporain ... traduit en francais par ... Gregoire Kabaragy Garabed. Paris: [P. Renouard,] 1844. 2 p.l., xix, 358 p., 1 l., 1 map. 8 deg.. ZNV Emin, Jean Baptiste. Recherches sur le paganisme armenien. [Traduction du russe, par M. A. de Stadler.] (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1864. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 18, p. 193-244.) *OAA ---- See also Faustus of Byzant. Engelhardt, Edouard. La Turquie et le Tanzimat; ou, Histoire des reformes dans l'empire ottoman depuis 1826 jusqu'a nos jours. Paris: A. Cotillon et Cie., 1882-84. 2 v. 8 deg.. GIB Eschavannes, E. d'. Les familles d'Orient. Histoire de la famille de Lusignan. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1852. 8 deg.. [serie 2,] tome 11, p. 136-149, 363-376; tome 12, p. 46-60, 182-191.) *OAA ---- Les rois d'Armenie au XIVe siecle. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1852. 8 deg.. [serie 2,] tome 12, p. 315-320.) *OAA Eusebius Pamphilus, bishop of Caesarea. Eusebii Pamphili Caesariensis episcopi Chronicon bipartitum nunc primum ex Armeniaco textu in Latinum conversum adnotationibus auctum Graecis fragmentis exornatum opera P. Jo. Baptistae Aucher ... Pars 1-2. Venetiis: Typis Coenobii PP. Armenorum in Insula S. Lazari, 1818. 2 v. 4 deg.. ††BA Faustus of Byzant. Faustus de Byzance. Bibliotheque historique en quatre livres, traduite pour la premiere fois de l'armenien en francais, par Jean-Baptiste Emine. (In: Victor Langlois, Collection des historiens anciens et modernes de l'Armenie. Paris, 1867. 4 deg.. v. 1, p. 201-310.) †*ONQ Menevischean, P. G. Faustus von Byzanz und Dr Lauer's deutsche Uebersetzung. (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1889. 8 deg.. v. 3, p. 51-68.) *OAA Filler, Ernst. Quaestiones de Leontii Armenii historia. Lipsiae: B. G. Teubner. 1903. 2 p.l., 4-37 p. 8 deg.. BBH p.v.2 Fonton, Felix. La Russie dans l'Asie-Mineure; ou, Campagnes du Marechal Paskevitch en 1828 et 1829; et tableau du Caucase, envisage sous le point de vue geographique, historique et politique. Paris: Leneveu, 1840. 2 v. 8 deg. and f deg.. BBP and †BBP France.--Ministere des Affaires Etrangeres. Documents diplomatiques. 1897. Affaires armeniennes; projets de reformes dans l'empire Ottoman, 1893-97. Paris: Imprimerie nationale, 1897. xix, 371 p. f deg.. †XBI ---- Documents diplomatiques. 1897. Affaires armeniennes (supplement) 1895-1896. Paris: Imprimerie nationale, 1897. xv, 124 p. f deg.. †XBI Die Franzoesischen Gelbbuecher ueber Armenien und die Zustaende in der Tuerkei, 1893-1897. Auszuege. (Der Christliche Orient. Westend-Berlin, 1897. 4 deg.. 1897, p. 251-266, 317-325, 360-368, 408-416.) †*OAA Fresneaux, Marcel. Trait d'union. Armenie-France; leurs relations depuis les temps les plus recules. Vannes: Lafolye freres, 1917. 2 p.l., (1)8-162 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. BBX At head of title: Docteur T. Aslan. Furneaux, Henry. The Roman relations with Parthia and Armenia from the time of Augustus to the death of Nero. (In his: Annals of Tacitus. Oxford, 1891. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 96-126.) BWH Gabrielian, Mugurdich Chojhauji. Armenia, a martyr nation; a historical sketch of the Armenian people from traditional times to the present tragic days. New York: Fleming H. Revell Co. [1918.] 352 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. BBX Galanus, Clemens. Historia Armena, ecclesiastica, & politica, nunc primum in Germania excusa, & ad exemplar Romanum diligenter expressa. Coloniae, 1686. 4 p.l., 504 p., 8 l. 12 deg.. BBX Garabed, Gregoire Kabaragy. See Elisha, vartabed. Gatteyrias, J. A. Elegie sur les malheurs de l'Armenie, et le martyre de Saint Vahan de Kogthen, episode de l'occupation arabe en Armenie, traduit pour la premiere fois de l'armenien litteral sur l'edition des... Mechitaristes par M. J. A. Gatteyrias. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1880. 8 deg.. serie 7, v. 16, p. 177-214.) *OAA Ghambashidze, D. Georgia and Armenia as allies. (Ararat. London, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 383-388.) *ONK Ghazarian, Mkrtitsch. Armenien unter der arabischen Herrschaft bis zur Entstehung des Bagratidenreiches. Nach arabischen und armenischen Quellen. Marburg: N. G. Elwert, 1903. 88 p. 8 deg.. *ONQ Repr.: Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie, Bd. 2, p. 149-225, *ONL. Ghesarian, Samuel. See Lazar of Pharbe. Ghevont, vartabed. Histoire des guerres et des conquetes des Arabes en Armenie par l'eminent Ghevond, vardabed armenien ecrivain du huitieme siecle traduite par Garabed V. Chahnazarian. Paris: Librairie de Ch. Meyrueis et Cie., 1856. xv, 164 p. 8 deg.. *ONQ Glen, James. See Hubboff, prince. Great Britain.--Foreign Office. Turkey. 1877, no. 15. Further correspondence respecting the affairs of Turkey. London: Harrison and Sons [1877]. xviii, 355 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1877, v. 91.) *SDD ---- Turkey. No. 38 (1878). Despatch from the marquis of Salisbury inclosing a copy of the treaty signed at Berlin, July 13, 1878. London: Harrison and Sons [1878]. 1 p.l., 31 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1878, v. 83.) *SDD Article 58 cedes to Russia the territories of Ardahan, Kars and Batoum.... Articles 61 and 62 treat of reforms in the provinces inhabited by Armenians and of religious liberty. ---- Turkey. 1879, no. 10. Correspondence respecting the condition of the population in Asia Minor and Syria. London: Harrison and Sons [1879]. v. 128 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1878-79, v. 80.) *SDD ---- Turkey. 1880, no. 1. Correspondence respecting the commission sent by the Porte to inquire into the condition of the vilayet of Aleppo. London: Harrison and Sons [1880]. vii, 138 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1880, v. 80.) *SDD ---- Turkey. 1880, no. 4. Correspondence respecting the condition of the populations in Asia Minor and Syria. London: Harrison and Sons [1880]. vii, 189 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1880, v. 80.) *SDD ---- Turkey. 1880, no. 23. Further correspondence respecting the condition of the populations in Asia Minor and Syria. (In continuation of "Turkey no. 4, 1880.") London: Harrison and Sons [1880]. ix, 282 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1880, v. 82.) *SDD ---- Turkey. 1881, no. 6. Further correspondence respecting the condition of the populations in Asia Minor and Syria. (In continuation of "Turkey no. 23, 1880.") London: Harrison and Sons [1881]. ix, 323 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1881, v. 100.) *SDD ---- Turkey. No. 1 (1889). Correspondence respecting the condition of the populations in Asiatic Turkey, 1888-89. London: Harrison and Sons [1889]. v, 91 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1889, v. 87.) *SDD ---- Turkey. No. 1 (1890). Correspondence respecting the condition of the populations in Asiatic Turkey, and the trial of Moussa Bey. In continuation of "Turkey no. 1, 1889." London: Harrison and Sons [1890]. iii, 130 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1890, v. 82.) *SDD ---- Turkey. No. 1 (1890-91). Correspondence respecting the condition of the populations in Asiatic Turkey, and the proceedings in the case of Moussa Bey. In continuation of "Turkey no. 1 (1890)." London: Harrison and Sons [1891]. v, 101 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1890-91, v. 96.) *SDD ---- Turkey. 1892, no. 1. Further correspondence respecting the condition of the populations in Asiatic Turkey. (In continuation of "Turkey no. 1, 1891.") London: Harrison and Sons [1892]. iv, 86 p., 1 l. f deg.. *SDD and ††XBI ---- Turkey. 1896, no. 1. Correspondence respecting the introduction of reforms in the Armenian provinces of Asiatic Turkey. London: Harrison and Sons [1896]. xi, 176 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1896, v. 95.) *SDD ---- Turkey. 1896, no. 3. Correspondence relating to the Asiatic provinces of Turkey. 1892-93. London: Harrison and Sons [1896]. xv, 230 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1896, v. 95.) *SDD ---- Turkey. 1896, no. 5. Correspondence relating to the Asiatic provinces of Turkey. Reports by Vice-consul Fitzmaurice from Birejik, Ourfa, Adiaman, and Behesni. London: Harrison and Sons [1896]. 1 p.l., 19 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1896, v. 96.) *SDD ---- Turkey. 1896, no. 6. Correspondence relating to the Asiatic provinces of Turkey: 1894-95. (In continuation of "Turkey no. 3, 1896.") London: Harrison and Sons [1896]. xxiv, 393 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1896, v. 96.) *SDD ---- Turkey. 1904, no. 3. Correspondence respecting the Asiatic provinces of Turkey. London: Harrison and Sons [1904]. viii, 83 p. f deg.. *SDD and †XBI Greene, Francis Vinton. The Russian army and its campaigns in Turkey in 1877-1878. New York: D. Appleton and Co., 1879. 2 v. 8 deg.. GLN Gregory, G. Marcar. See Tchobanian, Archag. Gregory of Armenia, called Illuminator. See Agathangelos. Gregory the Priest. Chronique de Gregoire le pretre. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 151-201.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Greiffenhag, Andre M. See Hethoum, prince of Gorigos. Guiragos of Kantzag. Extrait de l'histoire d'Armenie (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 411-430.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Hacobian, Avetoon Pesak. Armenia and the war; an Armenian's point of view, with an appeal to Britain and the coming peace conference. With a preface by the Rt. Hon. Viscount Bryce. London: Hodder & Stoughton, 1917. xx, 200 p. 12 deg.. BTZE ---- ---- New York: G. H. Doran Co. [1917?] xvi p., 1 l., 19-192 p. 12 deg.. BTZE Hagopian, Hovhan. The relations of the Armenians and the Franks during the reign of Leon II, 1186-1219. [Boston: "Armenia" Publishing Co., 1905.] 39 p. 8 deg.. BAC p.v.14 Repr.: Armenia, v. 1, no. 5, p. 13-31, no. 6, p. 11-24, †*ONK. ---- The Russification of the Armenians. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 7, p. 37-42; no. 8, p. 20-25; no. 9, p. 23-27.) †*ONK Henderson, Bernard William. The chronology of the wars in Armenia, A. D. 51-63. (Classical review. London, 1901. 4 deg.. v. 15, p. 159-165, 204-213, 266-274.) †RBA Henry, James Dodds. Baku; an eventful history. London: Archibald Constable & Co., Ltd. [1905.] viii, 256 p., 1 map, 24 pl. 8 deg.. GLR Herold, A. Ferdinand. L'amitie de la France et de l'Armenie (1895-1908). (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 697-706.) *ONK Hethoum, prince of Gorigos. Chronographie d'Hethoum, seigneur de Gorigos, ouvrage inedit du moine Aithon, auteur de l'Histoire des Tatars; traduit pour la premiere fois sur le texte armenien de l'edition de Venise ... par Victor Langlois. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1863. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 15, p. 103-114.) *OAA ---- Histoire orientale; ou, Des Tartares de Haiton ... qui comprend, premierement, une succincte & agreable description de plusieurs roiaumes ou pais orientaux, selon l'etat dans lequel ils se trouvoient environ l'an 1300. Secondement, une relation de beaucoup de choses remarquables, qui sont arrivees aux peuples de ces pais & nations. Le tout decrit par la main de N. Salcon, & traduit suivant l'edition latine de A. M. Greiffenhag. (Recueil de divers voyages curieux, faits en Tartarie. Leide, 1729. 4 deg.. v. 2, 96 cols., 1 l., 1 map.) Reserve ---- ---- (In: P. Bergeron, Voyages faits principalement en Asie dans les XII, XIII, XIV, XV siecles. La Haye, 1735. 4 deg.. v. 2, 96 cols., 1 l., 1 map.) Reserve and †BBE ---- Historia orientalis Haythoni Armenii: et hvic svbiectvm Marci Pavli Veneti Itinerarium, item Fragmentum e speculo historiali Vincentij Beluacensis eiusdem argumenti. [Edited by R. Reineccius.] Helmaestadii: [I. Lucius,] 1585. 8 p.l., 211 f., 87 l., 1 table. 12 deg.. Reserve ---- The Historie of Ayton, or Anthonie the Armenian, of Asia, and specially touching the Tartars. (In: Samuel Purchas, Purchas his pilgrimes. London, 1625. f deg.. part 3, p. 108-128.) †KBC ---- Relation de Hayton, prince d'Armenie.... (In: Louis de Backer, L'extreme Orient au moyen age. Paris, 1877. 8 deg.. p. 125-255.) BBB ---- Table chronologique de Hethoum, comte de Gorigos. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 469-490.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Hrasdan, Saven. Sind die Armenier kriegerischen Geistes bar? 2 ports. (Geist des Ostens. Muenchen, 1915. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 2, p. 422-436.) *OAA Hubboff, prince. Genealogical catalogue of the kings of Armenia. Translated from the Armenian into the Russian language by Lazar Kooznets. Translated from the Russian into English and compared with the original Armenian manuscript by James Glen. 94 p. (Oriental Translation Fund. Miscellaneous translations. London, 1834. 8 deg.. v. 2.) *OAG Hyvernat, Henry. See Mueller-Simonis, Paul, and Henry Hyvernat. Injijian, Ghougas. Hnakhosoutiun. [Armenian antiquities.] Venice, 1835. 3 v. 4 deg.. *ONM Kachouni, Manouele. Hnakhosoutiun Hahasdani. [An abridgement for schools of Ghougas Injijian's Hnakhosoutiun.] Venice, 1855. 3 p.l., 303 p. 16 deg.. *ONM Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Tome 1. Paris: Imprimerie imperiale, 1869. f deg.. ††BTR Contents: Preface; Introduction; Le royaume de la Petite Armenie ou la Cilicie au temps des croisades; Tableaux genealogiques et dynastiques; Matthew of Edessa, Extraits de la Chronique; Gregory the Priest, Chronique; Basil, Oraison funebre de Baudouin; Nerses the Graceful, patriarch of Armenia, Elegie sur la prise d'Edesse; Gregory Dgha, patriarch of Armenia, Elegie sur la prise de Jerusalem par Saladin; Michel Syrus, Extrait de sa Chronique; Guiragos of Kantzag, Extrait de l'Histoire d'Armenie; Vartan the Great, Extrait de l'Histoire universelle; Samuel of Ani, Extrait de la chronographie; Hethoum, prince of Gorigos, Table chronologique; Vahram of Edessa, Chronique rimee des rois de la Petite Armenie; Chant populaire sur la captivite de Leon; Hethoum II, king of Armenia, Poeme; Nerses of Lambron, Extraits de l'ouvrage intitule: Reflexions sur les institutions de l'eglise et explication du mystere de la messe; Sempad, constable of Armenia, Chronique du royaume de la Petite Armenie; Martiros of Crimea, Liste rimee des souverains de la Petite Armenie; Mkhithar of Dashir, Relation de sa conference avec le legat du pape; Appendice, Continuation de l'histoire du royaume de la Petite Armenie; Chartes armeniennes; Index. Armenian texts with French translations. Isaverdentz, Hagopos. Histoire de l'Armenie par le R. P. Jacques Dr. Issaverdens, Mekhithariste de Venise: enrichie de nombreuses figures executees aux frais de Mr. Jean Arathoon de Batavia. Venise: Imprimerie de S. Lazare, 1888. 259 p., 61 pl. ob. 4 deg.. †*ONQ Jean VI, patriarch of Armenia. Histoire d'Armenie par le patriarche Jean VI dit Jean Catholicos traduite de l'armenien en francais par M. J. Saint-Martin. Paris: Imprimerie royale, 1841. 2 p.l., iii-xlviii, 462 p. 8 deg.. *ONQ Jean Ouosk'herdjan. Memoire de Jean Ouosk'herdjan, pretre armenien de Wagarchabad, pour servir a l'histoire des evenemens qui ont eu lieu en Armenie et en Georgie a la fin du dix-huitieme siecle et au commencement du dix-neuvieme, suivi de vingt-huit anciennes inscriptions armeniennes, traduit de l'armenien. (In: J. H. Klaproth, Memoires relatifs a l'Asie. Paris, 1824. 8 deg.. tome 1, p. 225-309.) *OAC Kalenderian, Vahan H. The Armenians as soldiers. (New Armenia. New York, 1918. 4 deg.. v. 10, p. 61-63.) †*ONK Kennedy, J. The Indians in Armenia, 130 B. C.-300 A. D. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1904. 8 deg.. 1904, p. 309-314.) *OAA Khalathianz, Bagrat. Ueber den Ursprung der armenischen Fuerstentuemer. Auszug. (Verhandlungen des XIII. internationalen Orientalisten-Kongresses. Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1904. 8 deg.. p. 126-128.) *OAA ---- Der Ursprung der armenischen Fuerstentuemer. (Wiener Zeitschrift fuer die Kunde des Morgenlandes. Wien, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 17, p. 60-69.) *OAA Khalathianz, Grigori Abramovich. Was Artasches von Armenien der Besieger des Kroesus? Von Gregor Chalathianz. (Wiener Zeitschrift fuer die Kunde des Morgenlandes. Wien, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 17, p. 37-46.) *OAA Khaniji, Anton. Mukhtasar tawarikh al-Arman. [A short history of Armenia, translated into Arabic from the Armenian.] Jerusalem, 1868. 2 p.l., 356 p., 2 l. 8 deg.. *ONQ Khatch, A. See Dolens, Noel, and A. Khatch. Khungian, T. B. Glimpses from ancient Armenia. (American antiquarian. Chicago, 1908. 8 deg.. v. 30, p. 270-275.) HBA Kiepert, Heinrich. Ueber aelteste Landes- und Volksgeschichte von Armenien. 1 map. (Koeniglich Preussische Akademie der Wissenschaften. Monatsberichte. Berlin, 1870. 8 deg.. 1869, p. 216-243.) *EE Klaproth, Julius Heinrich. Apercu des entreprises des Mongols en Georgie et en Armenie dans le XIIIe siecle. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1833. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 12, p. 193-214, 273-305.) *OAA ---- Extrait du Derbend-nameh, ou de l'Histoire de Derbend. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1829. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 3, p. 439-467.) *OAA ---- See also Jean Ouosk'herdjan. Kohler, Charles. Lettres pontificales concernant l'histoire de la Petite Armenie au XIVe siecle. (In: Florilegium; ou, Recueil de travaux d'erudition dedies a Monsieur le marquis Melchior de Vogue. Paris, 1909. 4 deg.. p. 303-327.) †*OAC Kooznets, Lazar. See Hubboff, prince. Kurkjian, Vahan M. The Armenian kingdom of Cilicia. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1919. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 60-71.) *ONK Lagarde, Paul Anton de. See Agathangelos. Lagov, N. M., compiler. Armeniia; ocherki proshlago, prirody, kul'tury i pr. sostavil N. M. Lagov. Petrograd: N. P. Karbasnikov, 1915. viii, 134 p. 8 deg.. *QG p.v.54 Armenia: her past, nature and culture. Langlois, Victor. Collection des historiens anciens et modernes de l'Armenie publiee en francais sous les auspices de son excellence Nubar-Pacha.... Paris: Firmin Didot Freres, Fils et Cie., 1867-69. 2 v. 4 deg.. †*ONQ Tome 1. Historiens grecs et syriens traduits anciennement en armenien. Tome 2. Historiens armeniens du cinquieme siecle. ---- Considerations sur les rapports de l'Armenie avec la France au moyen age. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1860. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 12, p. 235-249.) *OAA ---- Documents pour servir a une sigillographie des rois d'Armenie au moyen age. (Revue archeologique. Paris, 1855. 8 deg.. annee 11, p. 630-634.) MTA ---- Une fete a la cour de Leon II, roi d'Armenie, au XIIIe siecle. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1854. 8 deg.. [serie 2,] tome 15, p. 213-216.) *OAA ---- Lettre a Monsieur l'academicien Brosset, sur quelques points d'histoire politique, religieuse et civile des Armeniens et des Franks, a l'epoque des croisades. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1861. f deg.. tome 3, col. 241-248.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863. tome 4, p. 280-291, *OAA. ---- Lettre a M. l'academicien Brosset, sur la succession des rois d'Armenie de la dynastie de Roupen et de la maison de Lusignan, d'apres les sources orientates et occidentales. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg. 1862. f deg.. tome 4, col. 285-300.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863. tome 4, p. 413-428, *OAA. ---- Place de l'Armenie dans l'histoire du monde. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1856. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 4, p. 321-331.) *OAA ---- See also Agathangelos; also Elisha, vartabed; also Hethoum, prince of Gorigos; also Michael I., patriarch of the Jacobites; also Sempad, constable of Armenia. Lazar of Pharbe. Histoire d'Armenie traduite pour la premiere fois en francais et accompagnee de notes historiques et critiques par le P. Samuel ... Ghesarian. (In: Victor Langlois, Collection des historiens anciens et modernes de l'Armenie. Paris, 1869. 4 deg.. tome 2, p. 253-367.) †*ONQ Lehmann-Haupt, Ferdinand Friedrich Karl. Die Einwanderung der Armenier im Zusammenhang mit den Wanderungen der Thrakier und Iranier. (Verhandlungen des XIII. internationalen Orientalisten-Kongresses. Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1904. 8 deg.. p. 130-140.) *OAA ---- Materialien zur aelteren Geschichte Armeniens und Mesopotamiens. Mit einem Beitrage, Arabische Inschriften aus Armenien und Diyarbekr, von Max van Berchem. Berlin, 1907. 183 p., 14 pl. 4 deg.. (Koenigliche Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu Goettingen. Abhandlungen: Philologisch-historische Klasse. Neue Folge, Bd. 9, Nr. 3.) *EE ---- Religionsgeschichtliches aus Kaukasien und Armenien. (Archiv fuer Religionswissenschaft. Tuebingen, 1900. 8 deg.. Bd. 3, p. 1-17.) ZAA Lenormant, Francois. Sur l'ethnographie et l'histoire de l'Armenie avant les Achemenides. (In his: Lettres assyriologiques. Paris, 1871. 4 deg.. tome 1, p. 113-164.) *OCK Leon III, king of Armenia. Decret ou privilege de Leon III, roi d'Armenie, en faveur des Genois, en l'annee 1288; tire des archives de Genes par J. de Saint-Martin. (Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Notices et extraits des manuscrits. Paris, 1827. 4 deg.. tome 11, p. 97-122.) *EO Leon VI, king of Armenia. Basmadjian, K. J. Leon VI of Lusignan. [A history of the last king of Armenia.] Paris, 1908. 8, 166 p., 1 l., 1 fac., 1 pl., 1 port. 4 deg.. †*ONQ Leon VI is frequently referred to as Leon V. Carriere, Auguste. La rose d'or du roi d'Armenie Leon V. (Revue de l'Orient latin. Paris, 1902. 8 deg.. tome 9, p. 1-5.) *OBA Langlois, Victor. Notice sur le chrysobulle, octroye par Leon V, roi d'Armenie, aux Siciliens, en 1331. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1863. f deg.. tome 5, col. 375-387.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863. tome 4, p. 649-666, *OAA. Saint Martin, Jean Antoine. Recherches sur la vie et les aventures de Leon, dernier roi des Armeniens. (Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Memoires. Paris, 1836. 4 deg.. tome 12, partie 2, p. 147-158.) *EO Schlumberger, Gustave. Bulles d'or et sceau des rois Leon II (I) et Leon VI (V) d'Armenie. 2 pl. (Revue de l'Orient latin. Paris, 1893. 8 deg.. tome 1, p. 161-167.) *OBA Tournebize, Francois. Leon V de Lusignan dernier roi de l'Armeno-Cilicie. (Etudes publiees par des peres de la Compagnie de Jesus. Paris, 1910. 8 deg.. v. 122, p. 60-79, 196-203.) *DM Lohmann, Ernst. Im Kloster zu Sis. Ein Beitrag zu der Geschichte der Beziehungen zwischen dem Deutschen Reiche und Armenien im Mittelalter. Striegau: R. Urban [1904]. 34 p., 1 l. 4 deg.. †BBX MacColl, Malcolm. Armenia and the Transvaal. (Fortnightly review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. new series, v. 59, p. 313-329.) *DA Macler, Frederic. Les Armeniens en Turquie. (Revue du monde musulman. Paris, 1913. 8 deg.. v. 24, p. 115-173.) *OAA ---- Pseudo-Sebeos, texte armenien traduit et annote par Frederic Macler. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1905. 8 deg.. serie 10, v. 6, p. 121-155.) *OAA ---- Rapport sur une mission scientifique en Armenie russe et en Armenie turque, juillet-octobre, 1909. Paris: Imprimerie nationale, 1910. 135 p., 16 pl. 8 deg.. (France.--Ministere de l'Instruction Publique et des Beaux-Arts. Nouvelles archives des missions scientifiques et litteraires. nouvelle serie, fasc. 2.) *EN ---- Russia and the Armenians. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 117-119.) †*ONK ---- See also Maribas the Chaldean. Mai, Angelo. See Samuel of Ani. Maribas the Chaldean. Extraits de la Chronique de Maribas Kaldoyo (Mar Abas Katina?). Essai de critique historico-litteraire par Frederic Macler. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1903. 8 deg.. serie 10, v. 1, p. 491-549.) *OAA Marr, N. Kavkazskii kul'turnyi mir i Armeniia. (Zhurnal Ministerstva Narodnago Prosvieshcheniia. Petrograd, 1915. 8 deg.. 1915, no. 6, p. 280-330.) *QCA A treatise on Caucasian culture and Armenia. Martiros of Crimea. Liste rimee des souverains de la Petite Armenie. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 681-687.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Matthew of Edessa. Chronique de Matthieu d'Edesse (962-1136) avec la continuation de Gregoire le pretre jusqu'en 1162.... (In: Bibliotheque historique armenienne; ou, Choix des principaux historiens armeniens traduits en francais. Par Edouard Dulaurier. Paris: E. Thorin [1858]. 4 p.l., xxvii, 546 p., 1 l. 8 deg..) *OAG ---- [Extraits de la Chronique.] Expeditions de Nicephore Phocas et de Jean Zimisces dans la Mesopotamie, la Syrie et la Palestine. Recit de la premiere croisade. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 1-150.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Michael I, patriarch of the Jacobites. Chronique de Michel le grand, patriarche des Syriens Jacobites. Traduite pour la premiere fois sur la version armenienne du pretre Ischok, par Victor Langlois. Venise: Typographie de l'Academie de Saint-Lazare, 1868. 3 p.l., 378 p. 4 deg.. †*ODR ---- Extrait de la Chronique de Michel le Syrien. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 309-409.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. ---- Extrait de la Chronique de Michel le Syrien comprenant l'histoire des temps ecoules depuis l'annee VIIIe du regne de l'empereur Justin II, jusqu'a la seconde annee du regne de Leon III, l'Isaurien; traduit de l'armenien par Ed. Dulaurier. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1848-49. 8 deg.. serie 4. v. 12, p. 281-334; v. 13, p. 315-376.) *OAA Mkhithar of Airivank. See Brosset, Marie Felicite. Monteith, William. Kars and Erzeroum: with the campaigns of Prince Paskiewitch in 1828 and 1829; and an account of the conquests of Russia beyond the Caucasus, from the time of Peter the Great to the treaty of Turcoman Chie and Adrianople. London: Longman, Brown, Green and Longmans, 1856. xvi, 332 p., 2 pl. 8 deg.. GLF Mordtmann, Andreas David. See Wakidi, Abu 'Abd Allah Muhammad ibn 'Umar al-. Morgan, Jacques Jean Marie de. The Armenians. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 135-136.) †*ONK ---- The rise and fall of Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 149-150.) †*ONK Moses of Chorene. Badmoutiun Hahots. [History of Armenia.] Venice, 1827. 1 p.l., 624 p., 4 pl. 24 deg.. *ONQ ---- Mosis Chorenensis Historiae Armeniacae Libri III. Accedit ejusdem Scriptoris Epitome Geographiae. Praemittitur praefatio quae de Literatura, ac Versione Sacra Armeniaca agit; et subjicitur appendix, quae continet Epistolas duas Armeniacas; primam, Corinthiorum ad Paulum Apostolum; alteram, Pauli Apostoli ad Corinthios; nunc primum ex codice Ms. integre divulgatas. Armeniace ediderunt, Latine verterunt, notisque illustrarunt Gulielmus & Georgius, Gul. Whistoni filii.... Londini: apud Joannem Whistonum, 1736. 2 p.l., xxiv, 412 p., 1 map. 4 deg.. †*ONQ ---- Histoire d'Armenie en trois livres, traduction nouvelle accompagnee de notes historiques, critiques et philologiques: (In: Victor Langlois, Collection des historiens anciens et modernes de l'Armenie. Paris, 1869. 4 deg.. tome 2, p. 45-175.) †*ONQ ---- Storia di Mose Corenese versione italiana illustrata dai Monaci Armeni Mechitaristi ritoccata quanto allo stile da N. Tommaseo. Venezia: Tipografia armena di San Lazzaro, 1841. xxii, 403 p., 8 l. 8 deg.. *ONQ ---- ---- Venezia: Tipografia armena di San Lazzaro, 1850. xviii, 403 p., 8 l. 2. ed. 8 deg.. *ONQ ---- See also Saint-Martin, Jean Antoine. Anderson, William. Notes on the geography of western Afghanistan. [Appendix. Notes by Johannes Avdall, on the extracts proposed from the work of Moses Khorenensis.] (Asiatic Society of Bengal. Journal. Calcutta, 1849. 8 deg.. v. 18, p. 553-594.) *OHA Carriere, Auguste. La legende d'Abgar dans l'histoire d'Armenie de Moise de Khoren. (In: Ecole des langues orientales vivantes. Centenaire 1795-1895. Recueil de memoires. Paris: Imprimerie nationale. 1895. f deg.. p. 357-414.) †*OAF Gildemeister, Johann. Pseudokallisthenes bei Moses von Khoren. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1886. 8 deg.. Bd. 40, p. 88-91.) *OAA Khalathianz, Grigori Abramovich. Armianskii epos v Istorii Armenii Moiseia Khorenskago. Opyt kritiki istochnikov. Moscow: V. Gatzuk, 1896. 2 parts in 1. 4 deg.. *QB A commentary on the Armenian history of Moses of Chorene. ---- Nachalo kriticheskago izucheniia istorii Armenii Moiseia Khorenskago. (Zhurnal Min. Narodn. Prosv. St. Petersburg, 1894. 8 deg.. 1894, no. 10, p. 377-402.) *QCA ---- Zur Erklaerung der armenischen Geschichte des Moses von Chorene. Von Gregor Chalathiantz. (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1893. 8 deg.. v. 7, p. 21-28.) *OAA Langlois, Victor. Etude sur les sources de l'histoire d'Armenie de Moise de Khoren. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1861. f deg.. tome 3, col. 531-583.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863. tome 4, p. 293-368, *OAA. Pichard, C. E. Essai sur Moise de Khoren, historien armenien du Ve siecle de l'ere du Christ et analyse succincte de son ouvrage sur l'histoire d'Armenie; accompagne de notes et commentaires et suivi d'un precis geographique. Paris: A. Lemerre, 1866. 97 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONQ Saint-Martin, Jean Antoine. Notice sur la vie et les ecrits de Moyse de Khoren, historien armenien. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1823. 8 deg.. serie 1, v. 2, p. 321-344.) *OAA Mueller-Simonis, Paul, and Henry Hyvernat. Du Caucase au golfe Persique a travers l'Armenie, le Kurdistan et la Mesopotamie par P. Mueller-Simonis suivie de notices sur la geographie et l'histoire ancienne de l'Armenie et les inscriptions cuneiformes du bassin de Van par H. Hyvernat. Washington: Universite catholique d'Amerique, 1892. viii, 628 p., 2 maps, 32 pl. 4 deg.. (Relation des missions scientifiques de H. Hyvernat et P. Mueller-Simonis, 1888-1889.) †BBV Muravyev, Andrei Nikolayevich. Gruziia i Armeniia. St. Petersburg: Tip. III Otdyeleniya, 1848. 3 v. 12 deg.. *QG Georgia and Armenia. Nerses, patriarch of Constantinople. Les Armeniens de Turquie. Rapport du patriarche armenien de Constantinople a la sublime porte; traduit de l'armenien par K. S. Achguerd. Paris: E. Leroux, 1877. 2 p.l., 67 p. 8 deg.. *ONR Neumann, Carl Friedrich. See Elisha, vartabed; also Vahram of Edessa. Neve, Felix. Etude sur Thomas de Medzoph, et sur son histoire de l'Armenie au XVe siecle. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1855. 8 deg.. serie 5, v. 6, p. 221-281.) *OAA ---- Expose des guerres de Tamerlan et de Schah-Rokh dans l'Asie occidentale, d'apres la chronique armenienne inedite de Thomas de Medzoph. 158 p. (Academie royale des sciences, des lettres et des beaux-arts de Belgique. Memoires couronnes. Bruxelles, 1861. 8 deg.. tome 11, no. 4.) *EM Niebuhr, Barthold Georg. See Wakidi, Abu 'Abd Allah Muhammad ibn 'Umar al-. Norman, Charles Boswell. Armenia, and the campaign of 1877. London: Cassell, Petter & Galpin [1878]. xx, 484 p., 4 maps, 4 plans. 8 deg.. BBX O'Connor, Thomas Power. See Williams, William Llewelyn. Orpelian, E. See Saint-Martin, Jean Antoine. Oukhtanes. See Brosset, Marie Felicite. Papazian, Bertha S. The tragedy of Armenia, a brief study and interpretation, with an introduction by Secretary James L. Barton. Boston, Chicago: The Pilgrim Press [cop. 1918]. xii p., 2 l., 164 p. 12 deg.. BBX Chapters 1-4 reprinted in the Armenian herald, v. 1, p. 626-632; v. 2, p. 29-46, 93-103, *ONK. Pavlovitch, Michel. La Russie et les Armeniens. (Revue politique internationale. Paris, 1914. 8 deg.. 1914. partie 1, p. 463-479.) SEA Pis'ma iz Armenii. (Moskovskii Telegraf. Moscow, 1829. 8 deg.. 1829, no. 8, p. 361-400.) *QCA Letters from Armenia. Prud'homme, Evariste. See Arisdagues de Lasdiverd; also Constitution nationale; also Zenob of Klag. Raffi, Aram. The Armenian nation. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 280-282.) †*ONK ---- The Armenians and Persia. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 139-141.) †*ONK ---- The English and the Armenians. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 213-214.) †*ONK ---- See also Buxton, Noel, and Harold Buxton. Rawlinson, George. Parthia. New York: G. P. Putnam's Sons, 1903. xx, 432 p., 2 maps, 1 pl. 12 deg.. (Story of the nations.) *OMV ---- The sixth great Oriental monarchy; or, The geography, history and antiquities of Parthia. London: Longmans, Green & Co., 1873. xiii p., 1 l., 458 p., 2 maps, 1 pl. 8 deg.. Stuart 6686 ---- ---- New York: Dodd, Mead & Co. [188-?] xiii p., 1 l., 458 p., 2 maps, 1 pl. 8 deg.. *OMV ---- The story of Parthia. New York: G. P. Putnam's Sons, 1893. xx, 432 p., 1 map. 12 deg.. (Story of the nations.) *OMV Reinach, Theodore. Mithridate Eupator, roi de Pont. Paris: Firmin-Didot et Cie., 1890. 3 p.l., v-xvi, 494 p., 1 map, 4 pl. 8 deg.. (Bibliotheque d'archeologie, d'art et d'histoire ancienne.) BBP Reineck, Reinerus. See Hethoum, prince of Gorigos. Robert, Ulysse. La chronique d'Armenie de Jean Dardel, eveque de Tortiboli. (Societe de l'Orient latin. Archives de l'Orient latin. Paris, 1884. 8 deg.. tome 2, p. 1-15.) *OBA Robinson, Emily J. Armenia and the Armenians. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 315-316.) †*ONK ---- The truth about Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. 4 deg.. v. 8, p. 217-220.) †*ONK Rockwell, William Walker, editor. The deportation of the Armenians, described from day to day by a kind woman somewhere in Turkey; edited by W. W. Rockwell.... New York: American Committee for Armenian and Syrian Relief, 1916. 24 p. 12 deg.. BTZE p.v.208 Rolin-Jacquemyns, Gustave. Actual position of Armenia and the Armenians under treaties of 1878. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 9, p. 34-39.) †*ONK ---- Armenia, the Armenians and treaties. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 249-269, 310-316, 359-381, 421-437, 476-498.) *ONK ---- Armenia under the Treaty of Paris of 1856. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 7, p. 13-32.) †*ONK ---- L'Armenie, les Armeniens et les traites. (Revue de droit international et de legislation comparee. Bruxelles, 1887-89. 8 deg.. tome 19, p. 284-325; tome 21, p. 291-353.) XBA ---- Diplomatic remonstrances. (Armenia. Boston, 1907. 4 deg.. v. 3, no. 3, p. 21-40; no. 4, p. 40-47.) †*ONK ---- Legal position of Turkish Armenia under the treaties of San Stefano and Berlin, and the Anglo-Turkish convention of the 4th June, 1878. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 8, p. 29-35.) †*ONK ---- Period from 1878 to 1881. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 10, p. 6-13; no. 11, p. 20-29; no. 12, p. 8-13.) †*ONK ---- Review of consular reports. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 3, no. 1, p. 13-18; no. 2, p. 14-27.) †*ONK Roth, Karl. Armenien und Deutschland. Leipzig: Veit & Comp., 1915. 30 p. 8 deg.. (Laender und Voelker der Tuerkei; Schriften des Deutschen Vorderasienkomitees. Heft 10.) GIC Russia.--Ministerstvo Inostrannykh Dyel. Sbornik diplomaticheskikh dokumentov. Reformy v Armenii. 26 Noiabria 1912 goda--10 Maia 1914 goda. Petrograd: Gosudarstvennaya Tipografiya, 1915. 294 p. 4 deg.. *QG A collection of diplomatic documents dealing with reforms in Armenia. Russia and Armenia. The Orange Book. (Ararat. London, 1915-16. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 314-322, 358-365, 409-416, 465-469; v. 3, p. 7-10, 47-51, 98-100, 199-203, 256-258, 295-298, 394-397, 440-443, 493-495.) *ONK Safrastian, A. S. Dashnaksuthiun--its past and present. (Ararat. London, 1914. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 196-205.) *ONK Saint-Martin, Jean Antoine. Discours sur l'origine et l'histoire des Arsacides. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1822. 8 deg.. serie 1, v. 1, p. 65-77.) *OAA ---- Fragments d'une histoire des Arsacides. Ouvrage posthume de M. J. Saint-Martin. Publie sous les auspices du Ministere de l'Instruction Publique. Paris: Imprimerie nationale, 1850. 2 v. 8 deg.. *OMV ---- Histoire des revolutions de l'Armenie, sous le regne d'Arsace II, pendant le 4. siecle. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1829-30. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 4, p. 401-452; v. 5, p. 161-207, 336-374.) *OAA ---- Memoires historiques et geographiques sur l'Armenie, suivis du texte armenien de l'histoire des princes Orpelians par E. Orpelian, archeveque de Siounie, et de celui des Geographies attribuees a Moyse de Khoren et au docteur Vartan, avec plusieurs autres pieces relatives a l'histoire d'Armenie; le tout accompagne d'une traduction francoise et de notes explicatives. Paris: Imprimerie royale, 1818-19. 2 v. 8 deg.. *ONQ ---- See also Jean VI, patriarch of Armenia; also Leon III, king of Armenia. Salcon, Nicolas de. See Hethoum, prince of Gorigos. Samuel of Ani. Extrait de la chronographie de Samuel d'Ani. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 445-468.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. ---- Samuelis Presbyteri Aniensis temporum usque ad suam aetatem ratio e libris historicorum summatim collecta. Opus ex Haicanis quinque codicibus ab Joanne Zohrabo doctore Armenio diligenter exscriptum atque emendatum Joannes Zohrabus et Angelus Maius primum conjunctis curis Latinitate donatum notisque illustratum ediderunt. (In: J. P. Migne, Patrologiae cursus completus.... Series Graeca. Paris, 1857. 4 deg.. tomus 19, col. 599-742.) ZEL Brosset, Marie Felicite. Samouel d'Ani; revue generale de sa chronologie (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1873. f deg.. tome 18, col. 402-442.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1873. tome 6, p. 741-798, *OAA. Finck, Franz Nikolaus, editor. Kleinere mittelarmenische Texte; hrsg., mit Einleitung und Glossen versehen von F. N. Finck. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1903-04. 8 deg.. Bd. 1, p. 1-32, 97-117, 177-219, 301-336; Bd. 2, p. 81-111.) *ONL The chronicle of Samuel of Ani. Sandwith, Humphry. How the Turks rule Armenia. (Nineteenth century. London, 1878. 8 deg.. v. 3, p. 314-329.) *DA ---- A narrative of the siege of Kars and of the six months' resistance by the Turkish garrison under General Williams to the Russian army: together with a narrative of travels ... in Armenia and Lazistan. London: J. Murray, 1856. ix, 348 p., 2 maps, 1 pl. 8 deg.. BBX Sempad, constable of Armenia. Chronique du royaume de la Petite Armenie. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 605-680.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. ---- Extrait de la chronique de Sempad, seigneur de Babaron, connetable d'Armenie, suivi de celle de son continuateur, comprenant l'histoire des temps ecoules depuis l'etablissement des Roupeniens en Cilicie, jusqu'a l'extinction de cette dynastie. Traduit pour la premiere fois de l'armenien, sur les editions de Moscou et de Paris par Victor Langlois. 1 p.l., 38 p. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Memoires. St. Petersbourg, 1862. f deg.. serie 7, tome 4, no. 6.) *QCB Siebert, Wilbur Henry. Armenia and Turkey. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 261-265.) †*ONK Sobraniye aktov. Sobranie aktov, otnosiashikhsia k obozrieniiu istorii armianskago naroda. Moscow: Lazarevykh Institut Vostochnykh Yazykov, 1838. 3 v. 8 deg.. *QB A collection of facts relating to the history of the Armenian people. Stadler, A. de. See Emin, Jean Baptiste. Streck, Maximilian. Armenia. (In: Encyclopaedia of Islam. Leyden, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 1, p. 435-449.) †*OGC Stubbs, William, bishop of Oxford. The medieval kingdoms of Cyprus and Armenia. (In his: Seventeen lectures on the study of medieval and modern history and kindred subjects.... Oxford, 1886. 8 deg.. p. 156-207.) BAF Stuermer, Harry. Two war years in Constantinople; sketches of German and Young Turkish ethics and politics.... Translated from the German [by] E. Allen and the author. New York: George H. Doran Co. [1917.] xiv p., 1 l., 17-292 p. 8 deg.. BTZE Svasley, Miran. Anglo-Armenian relations from the XII to XIV centuries. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 7, p. 3-11.) †*ONK Reprinted in the Armenian herald, v. 1, p. 11-16, Dec., 1917, *ONK. ---- Armenia in and before 1878. (Armenia. Boston, 1905-06. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 9, p. 7-18; no. 10, p. 8-17; no. 12, p. 9-15; v. 2, no. 6, p. 11-23.) †*ONK Sykes, Sir Mark, bart. The caliphs' last heritage; a short history of the Turkish Empire. London: Macmillan and Co., Ltd., 1915. xii, 638 p., 11 folded maps, 11 plans, 23 pl., 1 port. 8 deg.. *OPQ Tchobanian, Archag. L'Armenie; son histoire, sa litterature, son role en Orient. Conference faite le 9 mars 1897 a la salle de la Societe de geographie.... Paris: Societe du Mercure de France, 1897. 90 p. 5. ed. 12 deg.. BBX ---- The people of Armenia; their past, their culture, their future. Translated by G. Marcar Gregory.... With introduction by the Right Honourable Viscount Bryce. London: J. M. Dent & Sons, Ltd., 1914. xi, 68 p. 16 deg.. BBX Teza, Emilio. Cose armene. (Reale istituto veneto. Atti. Venezia, 1900. 8 deg.. tomo 59, parte 2, p. 569-589.) *ER Thomas the Arzrunian. See Brosset, Marie Felicite. Thomas of Medzoph. See Neve, Felix. Thopdschian, Hagob. Armenien vor und waehrend der Araberzeit. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1904. 8 deg.. Bd. 2, p. 50-71.) *ONL ---- Die inneren Zustaende von Armenien unter Asot I. (ausgenommen die Geschichte des armenischen Naxararowt 'iwns und der armenischen Kirche). (Berlin.--Universitaet: Seminar fuer orientalische Sprachen. Mitteilungen. Berlin, 1904. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 7, Abteilung 2, p. 104-153.) *OAA ---- Politische und Kirchengeschichte Armeniens unter Asot I. und Smbat I. (Berlin.--Universitaet: Seminar fuer orientalische Sprachen. Mitteilungen. Berlin, 1905. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 8, Abteilung 2, p. 98-215.) *OAA Thoumaian, G. Armenian-Kurdish relations. (New Armenia. New York, 1918. 4 deg.. v. 10, p. 104-105.) †*ONK ---- A historical sketch of Russia's relations with Armenia. (Ararat. London, 1915. 8 deg.. v. 3, p. 83-89, 124-132.) *ONK ---- The Kurds in their relation to Armenia. (Ararat. London, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 375-378, 426-430.) *ONK ---- The relations of Armenia with England. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 53-55.) †*ONK ---- The relations of Armenia with England in the middle ages. (Ararat. London, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 368-373.) *ONK ---- Russia's relations with Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. f deg.. v. 8, p. 122-124, 153-156.) †*ONK Tommaseo, Niccolo. See Moses of Chorene. Tournebize, Francois. Histoire politique et religieuse de l'Armenie. Depuis les origines des Armeniens jusqu'a la mort de leur dernier roi (l'an 1393).... Paris: Librairie A. Picard et fils [1910?]. 2 p.l., 872 p., 3 maps. 4 deg.. BBX Transmigration des Armeniens d'Aderbeidjan sur le territoire russe. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1834. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 13, p. 317-337.) *OAA Turabian, Hagop. The Armenian Social-Democratic Hentchakist party. (Ararat. London, 1916. 8 deg.. v. 3, p. 451-457, 516-522; v. 4, p. 34-38.) *ONK Tutundjian, Telemaque. Du pacte politique entre l'etat ottoman et les nations non-musulmanes de la Turquie. Dissertation pour le doctorat presentee a la faculte de droit de l'Universite de Lausanne. Lausanne: G. Vaney-Burnier, 1904. 113 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *OPQ Ubicini, Jean Henri Abdolonyme. De l'etat moral et politique de l'Armenie turque. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1854. 8 deg.. [serie 2,] tome 15, p. 261-266.) *OAA ---- Empire ottoman. Les Armeniens sous la domination ottomane. Fragment historique. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1854. 8 deg.. [serie 2,] tome 15, p. 81-94.) *OAA Vahram of Edessa. Chronique rimee des rois de la Petite Armenie. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 491-535.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. ---- Vahram's Chronicle of the Armenian kingdom in Cilicia during the time of the Crusades. Translated from the original Armenian with notes and illustrations by Charles F. Neumann. London: Oriental Translation Fund, 1831. xix p., 1 l., 23-110 p. 8 deg.. (C. F. Neumann, Translations from the Chinese and Armenian.) *OAG ---- Chronique du royaume armenien de la Cilicie a l'epoque des croisades composee par Vahram Rapoun et traduite sur l'original armenien par Sahag Bedrosian. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1864. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 17, p. 245-254, 315-325.) *OAA Vartan the Great. See Saint-Martin, Jean Antoine. Vartooguian, Armayis P. Armenia's ordeal. A sketch of the main features of the history of Armenia; and an inside account of the work of American missionaries among Armenians, and its ruinous effect. New York, 1896. v, 101 p., 9 pl. 12 deg.. BBX Verite sur le mouvement revolutionnaire armenien et les mesures gouvernementales. Constantinople, 1916. 16 p. 8 deg.. BTZE p.v.253 Villari, Luigi. The Armenians and the Tartars. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 233-235.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Fire and sword in the Caucasus. ---- The Armeno-Tartar hostilities. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 251-252.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Fire and sword in the Caucasus. ---- Fire and sword in the Caucasus. London: T. F. Unwin, 1906. 347 p., 64 pl. 8 deg.. *R-GMV ---- Russia and the Armenians. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 200-202.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Fire and sword in the Caucasus. ---- Russian bureaucracy and the Armenians. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 219-220.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Fire and sword in the Caucasus. Vincentius, Bellovacensis. See Hethoum, prince of Gorigos. Vogel, Charles, and A. Coumryantz. Le peuple qui souffre; l'Armenie, ses origines, son passe, son avenir? Preface par Jean Jullien. Paris: Dorbon-aine [cop. 1917]. xiii, 16-110 p., 1 l. 16 deg.. BBX Vziatie Arzeruma (pis'ma iz Aremnii). (Moskovskii Telegraf. Moscow, 1830. 8 deg.. 1830, no. 2, p. 141-175.) *QCA Capture of Erzeroum. Wakidi, Abu 'Abd Allah Muhammad ibn 'Umar al-. Geschichte der Eroberung von Mesopotamien und Armenien von Mohammed ben Omar el Wakedi. Aus dem Arabischen uebersetzt und mit Anmerkungen begleitet von B. G. Niebuhr. Hrsg. und mit Zusaetzen und Erlaeuterungen versehen von Dr. A. D. Mordtmann. Hamburg, 1847. xxi, 185 p., 1 map. 4 deg.. †*OFL Wheeler, Alfred A. The Russians in Armenia. (Fortnightly review. London, 1878. 8 deg.. new series, v. 24, p. 852-866.) *DA Whiston, George. See Moses of Chorene. Whiston, William. See Moses of Chorene. Williams, Charles. The Armenian campaign: a diary of the campaign of 1877, in Armenia and Koordistan. London: C. Kegan Paul & Co., 1878. xx, 366 p., 2 maps. 8 deg.. BBX Williams, William Llewelyn. The ancient kingdom of greater Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 5-7, 25-27.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Armenia: past and present, p. 41-51. ---- Armenia: past and present; a study and a forecast.... With an introduction by T. P. O'Connor, M. P. London: P. S. King & Son, Ltd., 1916. xi, 211 p., 2 folded maps. 8 deg.. BBX ---- The kingdom of Lesser Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 36-39.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Armenia: past and present, p. 64-81. ---- Under the heel of the Turk. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 56-58.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Armenia: past and present, p. 82-98. Zavak. Armenia: a chronological treatise. B. C. 2247-A. D. 1375. (Ararat. London, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 80-83, 129-135, 183-187, 234-239.) *ONK ---- Armenia. A monograph. (Ararat. London, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 324-331.) *ONK Zenob of Klag. Histoire de Daron. [Translated by Evariste Prud'homme.] (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1863. 8 deg.. serie 6, v. 2, p. 401-475.) *OAA Zohrabian, John. See Samuel of Ani. MASSACRES The Adana massacres: who is responsible? The Parliamentary commission to Adana. Interview with an Armenian deputy. Change in the tone of the Turkish press. The central government acts promptly. Decision to bring the chief offenders, including high officials, to trial. Constantinople, Turkey, 1909. 23 p. 12 deg.. GIC p.v.5 American Armenian Relief Fund. The cry of Armenia. [New York: American Armenian Relief Fund in cooperation with the American Committee for Armenian and Syrian Relief, 1916.] 32 p. 8 deg.. BTZE p.v.243 American Committee for Armenian and Syrian Relief. More material for your sermon on Bible lands, to-day, A. D. 1918. [New York, 1918.] 31 p. nar. 8 deg.. BTZE p.v.301 Articles by Henry Morgenthau, Oscar S. Straus, and others. ---- A national test of brotherhood; America's opportunity to relieve suffering in Armenia, Syria, Persia and Palestine. [New York, 1917?; 32 p. 8 deg.. BTZW p.v.2 Andreasian, Dikran. Comment un drapeau sauva quatre mille Armeniens. Paris: Fischbacher [1916]. 15 p. 12 deg.. BTZE p.v.270 Apcar, Diana Agabeg. Betrayed Armenia. Yokohama: Japan Gazette Press, 1910. 5 p.l., 10-77 p., 1 l., 1 pl. 8 deg.. BBX ---- In His name. Yokohama: Japan Gazette Press, 1911. 4 p., 1 l., 5-52 p., 1 l., 9 pl. 8 deg.. BBX ---- On the cross of Europe's imperialism, Armenia crucified. Yokohama: [Fukuin Prtg. Co., Ltd.,] 1918. viii, 116 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. BBX ---- Peace and no peace. Yokohama: Japan Gazette Press, 1912. 1 p.l., 101 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. YFX p.v.12 ---- The peace problem. Yokohama: Japan Gazette Press, 1912. 1 p.l., 131 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. YFX p.v.12 ---- The truth about the Armenian massacres. Yokohama: Japan Gazette, 1910. 26 p. 12 deg.. BBH p.v.2 Argyll (8. duke), George Douglas Campbell. Our responsibilities for Turkey. Facts and memories of forty years. London: J. Murray, 1896. 166 p. 12 deg.. GIE ---- See also Armenia. Armenia. Letter from the duke of Argyll, &c. Documentary and historical evidence of England's responsibility for the horrors inflicted by the Turks upon the Armenian people. Manchester: "Guardian" Printing Works, 1896. 16 p. 8 deg.. BBH p.v.4 The Armenian deportations. From the English Blue Book. (New Armenia. New York, 1917-18. f deg.. v. 9, p. 238-239, 253-255, 270-271, 286-287, 319; v. 10, p. 14-16.) †*ONK Armenian documents. [No.] 1-6. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1917-18. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 51-53, 95-104, 153-164, 223-229, 326-347, 453-457, 506-515, 555-563.) *ONK The Armenian massacre. (Hartford Seminary record. Hartford, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 251-279.) ZISF The Assassination of Armenia. The Turkish program of annihilation described by government representatives, teachers, missionaries, and other eyewitnesses. (Missionary review of the world. New York, 1915. 8 deg.. new series, v. 28, p. 837-848.) ZKVA Les Atrocites en Armenie. (L'Asie francaise. Paris, 1915. 4 deg.. annee 15, p. 82-89.) †BBA Barby, Henry. Au pays de l'epouvante, l'Armenie martyre. Preface de M. Paul Deschanel.... Paris: A. Michel [1917]. 2 p.l., v, 260 p., 14 pl., 2 ports. 12 deg.. BTZE An account, with official documents, of the massacre, resistance and deportation of the Armenians in the European war. Benoit, Lucien. Les massacres d'Adana. Relations de missionnaires. (Etudes par des peres de la Compagnie de Jesus. Paris, 1909. 8 deg.. v. 120, p. 39-54, 237-248.) *DM Bliss, Edwin Munsell. Turkey and the Armenian atrocities. A graphic and thrilling history of Turkey--The Armenians, and the events that have led up to the terrible massacres ... in Armenia.... By Rev. E. M. Bliss, assisted by Rev. C. Hamlin, E. A. Grosvenor.... With an introduction by F. E. Willard. New York: Hibbard & Young [cop. 1896]. 1 p.l., 4, v-xv, 17-573 p., 1 map, 1 pl., 1 port. sq. 8 deg.. BBX ---- Turkey and the Armenian atrocities; a reign of terror. From Tartar huts to Constantinople palaces. Centuries of oppression--Moslem and Christian--Sultan and Patriarch--broken pledges followed by massacre and outrage. The Red Cross to the rescue. With an introduction by Frances E. Willard. n. p.: Edgewood Pub. Co. [cop. 1896.] 1 p.l., 4, v-xv, 17-574 p., 1 map, 1 port. 8 deg.. BBX and *ONQ Bresnitz von Sydacoff, Philipp Franz. Abdul Hamid und die Christenverfolgungen in der Tuerkei. Aufzeichnungen nach amtlichen Quellen. Berlin: F. Luckhardt [pref. 1896]. iv, 73 p. 3. ed. 8 deg.. BBX Brezol, Georges. Les Turcs ont passe la. Recueil de documents, dossiers, rapports, requetes, protestations, suppliques et enquetes, etablissant la verite sur les massacres d'Adana en 1909. Paris: l'auteur, 1911. vi, 8-400 p., 1 map, 3 ports. 12 deg.. *OPQ Bryce (1. viscount), James Bryce. The Armenian massacres. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. f deg.. v. 8, p. 51-53.) †*ONK ---- See also Great Britain.--Foreign Office. Miscellaneous. no. 31 (1916); also Toynbee, Arnold Joseph. Burns, John. See The Massacres in Turkey. Carlier, Emilie. Au milieu des massacres; journal de la femme d'un consul de France en Armenie. Paris: F. Juven [1903]. 2 p.l., 4-156 p., 1 port. 12 deg.. *ONQ Chambers, L. P. The massacre of Armenia. (Queen's quarterly. Kingston, 1916. 8 deg.. v. 24, p. 228-235.) *DA The Constantinople massacre. (Contemporary review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 70, p. 457-465.) *DA Der-Hagopian, Nishan. Persecuted Armenia. (Century. New York, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 96, p. 660-667.) *DA Dzotsikian, S. M. Debi Pergutiun. [A story of the Armenian massacres, republished from the newspaper "Aspares."] Fresno, Cal., 1916. 1 p.l., 194 p. 12 deg.. *ONP Einstein, Lewis. The Armenian massacres. (Contemporary review. London, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 111, p. 486-494.) *DA Reprinted in New Armenia, v. 9, p. 152-153, 169-171, †*ONK. Etesioh sosgali tebkl yev oghperkoutiun godoradzin Etesioh. [Etesia's horrible circumstances; or, The tragedy of the massacres at Etesia. Written by an Armenian of that city.] Schumla, Bulgaria, 1904. 8, 32 p., 3 pl. 8 deg.. *ONQ Fa'iz al-Husain. L'Armenie martyre, par Faiz el-Ghassein. (In: La domination ottomane. Geneve, 1917. 2. ed. 12 deg.. p. 65-136.) BBX ---- Martyred Armenia, by Fa'iz el-Ghusein ... translated from the original Arabic.... New York: G. H. Doran Co., 1918. vii p., 1 l., 52 p. 12 deg.. BTZE p.v.293 ---- Die Tuerkenherrschaft und Armeniens Schmerzensschrei, von Scheik Faiz el-Ghassein. Zuerich: Art. Institut O. Fuessli, 1918. 100 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. BBX Des Martyrium Armeniens, p. 47-100. Ferriman, Z. Duckett. The Young Turks and the truth about the holocaust at Adana in Asia Minor, during April, 1909. Written and compiled in April, 1911, by the author of "Turkey and the Turk." [London? 1913.] vi p., 1 l., 216 p., 1 map. 12 deg.. BBX Germany, Turkey, and Armenia; a selection of documentary evidence relating to the Armenian atrocities from German and other sources. London: J. J. Keliher & Co., Ltd., 1917. 3 p.l., 127 p. 8 deg.. BTZE Gibbons, Helen Davenport. The red rugs of Tarsus; a woman's record of the Armenian massacre of 1909. New York: Century Co., 1917. xiv p., 1 l., 194 p. 12 deg.. BBX ---- Les Turcs ont passe par la! Journal d'une Americaine pendant les massacres d'Armenie. Traduit de l'anglais par F. de Jessen, preface de Fr. Thiebault-Sisson. Paris: Berger-Levrault, 1918. xviii, 163 p., 1 l., 3 ports. 12 deg.. BBX A translation of the preceding. Gibbons, Herbert Adams. The blackest page of modern history; events in Armenia in 1915, the facts and the responsibilities. New York: G. P. Putnam's Sons, 1916. 71 p. 12 deg.. BTZE Sources, p. 69-71. ---- "La page la plus noire de l'histoire moderne." Les derniers massacres d'Armenie, les responsabilites, par Herbert Adams Gibbons.... Traduit de l'anglais. [Paris: Berger-Levrault, 1916.] 47 p. 16 deg.. (Pages d'histoire, 1914-1916. [fasc.] 92.) BTZE Gladstone, William Ewart. See The Massacres in Turkey. Great Britain.--Foreign Office. Miscellaneous no. 31 (1916). The treatment of Armenians in the Ottoman Empire 1915-16. Documents presented to Viscount Grey of Fallodon, secretary of state for foreign affairs, by Viscount Bryce. With a preface by Viscount Bryce. London: Sir J. Causton and Sons, 1916. xlii, 684 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. XBI and *ONQ ---- Turkey. 1895, no. 1. Correspondence relating to the Asiatic provinces of Turkey. Part I. Events at Sassoon, and commission of inquiry at Moush. London: Harrison and Sons [1895]. xv, 208 p., 1 map. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1895, v. 109.) *SDD Relates to the Armenian massacres of 1894. ---- ---- Part II. Commission of inquiry at Moush: proces-verbaux and separate depositions. London: Harrison and Sons [1895]. 3, 378 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1895, v. 109.) *SDD Relates to the Armenian massacres of 1894. Greene, Frederick Davis. The Armenian crisis in Turkey; the massacre of 1894, its antecedents and significance with a consideration of some of the factors which enter into the solution of this phase of the eastern question. New York: G. P. Putnam's Sons, 1895. xix, 180 p., 1 map, 1 pl. 12 deg.. BBX ---- Armenian massacres; or, The sword of Mohammed, containing a complete and thrilling account of the terrible atrocities and wholesale murders committed in Armenia by Mohammedan fanatics, including a full account of the Turkish people, their history, government, manners, customs and strange religious belief. To which is added: The Mohammedan reign of terror in Armenia, edited by Henry Davenport Northrop. [Philadelphia:] American Oxford Pub. Co. [cop. 1896.] xviii, 512 p., 1 folded map, 18 pl., 1 port. 12 deg.. BBX p. 1-180 identical with correspondingly paged matter in the author's Rule of the Turk. ---- The rule of the Turk. A revised and enlarged edition of The Armenian Crisis. New York: G. P. Putnam's Sons, 1896. xix, 192 p., 1 map, 2 pl. 12 deg.. BBX Bibliography, p. 183-186. Gregory, Daniel Seelye. The Armenians in the eastern question. The Armenian crisis and massacres. (In his: The crime of Christendom. New York [cop. 1900]. 8 deg.. p. 139-238.) GIE Griselle, Eugene. Une victime du pangermanisme; l'Armenie martyre. Paris: Bloud & Gay, 1916. 127 p. 12 deg.. ("Pages actuelles," 1914-1916. no. 83-84.) BTZE Grosvenor, E. A. See Bliss, Edwin Munsell. Hamlin, Cyrus. The genesis and evolution of the Turkish massacre of Armenian subjects. (American Antiquarian Society. Proceedings. Worcester, 1898. 8 deg.. v. 12, p. 288-294.) IAA ---- The martyrdom of Armenia. (Missionary review of the world. New York, 1896. 8 deg.. new series, v. 9, p. 431-435.) ZKVA ---- See also Bliss, Edwin Munsell. Harris, Helen B. See Harris, James Rendel, and Helen B. Harris. Harris, James Rendel, and Helen B. Harris. Briefe von Schauplatz der letzten Massacres in Armenien. (Der Christliche Orient. Westend-Berlin, 1897. 4 deg.. 1897, p. 302-311, 350-359, 387-395, 444-450, 556-566.) †*OAA ---- Letters from the scenes of the recent massacres in Armenia. New York: F. H. Revell Co. [1897?] xii p., 1 l., 254 p., 1 map, 8 pl. 8 deg.. BBY Howard, William Willard. Horrors of Armenia: the story of an eye-witness. New York: Armenian Relief Association, 1896. 62 p. 12 deg.. BBH p.v.2 Jessen, F. de. See Gibbons, Helen Davenport. Khungian, T. B. Massacres in Turkey. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 4, p. 48-54.) †*ONK Ksan gakhaghannir. [Twenty gallows.] Providence, 1916. 171 p., 2 l. 8 deg.. *ONQ MacColl, Malcolm. The Constantinople massacre and its lesson. (Contemporary review. London, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 68, p. 744-760.) *DA ---- Malcolm MacColl; memoirs and correspondence; edited by G. W. E. Russell. London: Smith, Elder & Co., 1914. 4 p.l., 407 p., 1 port. 8 deg.. AN Les Massacres d'Armenie. (L'Asie francaise. Paris, 1916. 4 deg.. annee 16, p. 25-27.) †BBA The Massacres in Turkey. [no.] 1-5. (Nineteenth century. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 40, p. 654-680.) *DA 1. By Dr. J. Guinness Rogers. 2. By the Earl of Meath. 3. By John Burns. 4. By Prof. H. Anthony Salmone. 5. By Hon. W. E. Gladstone. Meath (12. earl), Reginald Brabazon. See The Massacres in Turkey. Meda, Filippo. La storia documentata delle ultime stragi in Armenia. (Nuova antologia. Roma, 1917. 8 deg.. serie 6, v. 191, p. 312-321.) NNA Morgenthau, Henry. Ambassador Morgenthau's story, by Henry Morgenthau, formerly American ambassador to Turkey. Garden City, New York: Doubleday, Page & Co., 1918. xv, 407 p., 48 pl. 8 deg.. BTZE Mouchek Yebiscobos (Seropian). Adanahi chartu yev badaskhanadouneru. [The Adana massacres.] Boston, 1910. 3, 64 p. 12 deg.. *ONQ ---- The truth about the Adana massacres. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 10, p. 1-4; no. 11, p. 9-11; no. 12, p. 19-22.) †*ONK Nazarbek, Avetis. Zeitun. (Contemporary review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 69, p. 513-528.) *DA Niepage, Martin. The horrors of Aleppo, seen by a German eyewitness; a word to Germany's accredited representatives by Dr. Martin Niepage, higher grade teacher in the German technical school at Aleppo, at present at Wernigerode. London: T. F. Unwin, Ltd. [1917?] 24 p. 12 deg.. BTZE p.v.275 Northrop, Henry Davenport. See Greene, Frederick Davis. Pinon, Rene. La suppression des Armeniens: methode allemande--travail turc. Paris: Perrin et Cie., 1916. 2 p.l., 75 p. 12 deg.. BTZE This was published anonymously in the Revue des deux mondes, periode 6, tome 31, p. 531-560, Feb., 1916, *DM. Political papers for the people. Edited by W. T. Stead, no. 1. London: "Review of Reviews" Office, 1896. 3 p.l., 9-63 p. 12 deg.. BBH p.v.4 no. 1. The haunting horrors in Armenia. Price, Morgan Philips. War & revolution in Asiatic Russia. London: G. Allen & Unwin, Ltd. [1918.] 295(1) p., 2 folded maps. 8 deg.. BTZE Quillard, Pierre. L'extermination d'une race. (La contemporaine. Paris, 1901. 8 deg.. no. 8, p. 520-531.) *DM ---- Les nouveaux massacres d'Armenie. (Revue. Paris, 1901. 8 deg.. v. 39, p. 113-127.) *DM Ramsay, Sir William Mitchell. Two massacres in Asia Minor. [London, 1896.] 16 p. 8 deg.. ZNG p.v.4 Repr.: Contemporary review, v. 70, p. 435-448, *DA. Raynolds, George C. Thrilling experiences in Van. (Missionary review of the world. New York, 1916. 8 deg.. new series, v. 29, p. 169-180.) ZKVA Red Cross, United States.--American National Red Cross. Report. America's relief expedition to Asia Minor under the Red Cross. Washington, 1896. 125 p., 1 map, 9 pl. 8 deg.. WZX Roberts, Chalmers. A mother of martyrs. (Atlantic monthly. Boston, 1899. 8 deg.. v. 83, p. 90-96.) *DA Rogers, James Guinness. See The Massacres in Turkey. Rohrbach, Paul. Deutschland unter den Armeniern. (Preussische Jahrbuecher. Berlin, 1899. 8 deg.. Bd. 96, p. 308-328.) *DF Russell, George William Erskine. See MacColl, Malcolm. Salmone, Habib Anthony. See The Massacres in Turkey. Seropian, Moushek. See Mouchek Yebiscobos (Seropian). Shepard, Fred Douglas. Personal experience in Turkish massacres and relief work. (Journal of race development. Worcester, 1910-11. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 316-339.) QOA Situation in Russian Armenia. Massacres in Bakou. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 7, p. 43-52.) †*ONK Speer, Robert Elliott. The Armenian massacres. (In his: Missions and modern history. New York [1904]. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 439-485.) ZKVF Stead, William Thomas, editor. See Political papers. The Story of an Armenian refugee. (National magazine. Boston, 1897. 8 deg.. v. 6, p. 3-15, 145-155.) *DA The Story of a nation's martyrdom, n. p. [1894?] 1 l., 4 pl. 4 deg.. BAC p.v.18 Tcheraz, Minas. Les martyrs armeniens devant la conference de La Haye. (Revue des revues. Paris, 1899. 8 deg.. v. 29, p. 234-242.) *DM Tchobanian, Archag. La femme armenienne; conference faite a Paris le 18 janvier 1917, suivie de poemes de Mlle. S. Vahanian, Mme. Z. Essaian, Mme. Ch. Kourghinian, de Maximes et conseils des vieilles meres rustiques d'Armenie, du Recit de l'episode de Djebel-Moussa, par une rescapee, et du Cri d'une Armenienne. Paris: B. Grasset, 1918. 2 p.l., 87 p., 2 l. 16 deg.. BTZE p.v.303, no.3 Toynbee, Arnold Joseph. Armenian atrocities; the murder of a nation ... with a speech delivered by Lord Bryce in the House of Lords. London: Hodder & Stoughton, 1915. 117 p., 1 double map. 12 deg.. BTZE p.v.145 ---- ---- New York: G. H. Doran Co. [1918.] 117 p., 1 double map. 12 deg.. BBX ---- De armeniska grymheterna: ett moerdat folk. Jaemte ett tal i engelska oeverhuset av Lord Bryce. London: Eyre & Spottiswoode, Ltd., 1916. 3 p.l., 182 p., 1 map. 12 deg.. BTZE p.v.228 ---- Las atrocidades en Armenia; el exterminio de una nacion, precedido de un discurso pronunciado por Lord Bryce en la Camara de los Lores. Paris: T. Nelson & Sons [1918?]. 201 p. map. 12 deg.. BBX ---- "The murderous tyranny of the Turks," with a preface by Viscount Bryce.... London: Hodder & Stoughton, 1917. 35 p. 12 deg.. BTZE p.v.270, no.4 Troshine, Yvan. A bystander's notes of a massacre. The slaughter of Armenians in Constantinople. (Scribner's magazine. New York, 1897. 8 deg.. v. 21, p. 48-67.) *DA Ussher, Clarence Douglas. The Armenian atrocities and the Jihad. (Moslem world. London, 1916. 8 deg.. v. 6, p. 140-143.) *OAA Veselovski, Yuri. Dieti obezdolennago kraia. (Viestnik vospitaniia. Moscow, 1916. 8 deg.. v. 27, no. 3, p. 179-197.) *QCA Atrocities committed upon Turkish Armenians, as described in Armenian literature. WORKS IN ARMENIAN RELATING TO OTHER COUNTRIES Acogh'ig de Daron, Etienne. Histoire universelle par Etienne Acogh'ig de Daron traduite de l'armenien et annotee par E. Dulaurier. Partie 1. Paris: E. Leroux, 1883. 4 deg.. (Ecole des langues orientales vivantes. Publications, serie 1, v. 18.) *OAF Chahan de Cirbied, Jacques. See Davoud Zadour de Melik Schahnazar. Davoud Zadour de Melik Schahnazar. Notices sur l'etat actuel de la Perse, en persan, en armenien et en francais, par Myr-Davoud-Zadour de Melik Schahnazar ... et MM. Langles ... Chahan de Cirbied.... Paris: Imprimerie royale, 1818. 3 p.l., 360 p., 2 pl. 24 deg.. *OMZ Dirohyan, Hagop V. Hamarod tasakirk unthanour badmoutian. [Brief course in general history.] Venice, 1897. 2 v. in 1. 12 deg.. *ONQ Dulaurier, Edouard. L'histoire des croisades d'apres les chroniques armeniennes. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1858. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 8, p. 169-184.) *OAA ---- Les Mongols d'apres les historiens armeniens; fragments traduits sur les textes originaux par M. Ed. Dulaurier. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1858-60. 8 deg.. serie 5, v. 11, p. 192-255, 426-473, 481-508; v. 16, p. 273-322.) *OAA ---- See also Acogh'ig de Daron, Etienne. Khalathianz, Grigori Abramovich. Ueber die armenische Version der Weltchronik des Hippolytus. (Wiener Zeitschrift fuer die Kunde des Morgenlandes. Wien, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 17, p. 182-186.) *OAA Langles, Louis Mathieu. See Davoud Zadour de Melik Schahnazar. Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich. Essai d'une histoire de la dynastie des Sassanides, d'apres les renseignements fournis par les historiens armeniens par M. K. Patkanian; traduit du russe par M. Evariste Prud'homme. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1866. 8o. serie 6, v. 7, p. 101-238.) *OAA Petermann, Julius Heinrich. Beitraege zu der Geschichte der Kreuzzuege aus armenischen Quellen. (Koenigliche Akademie der Wissenschaften zu Berlin. Philologische und historische Abhandlungen. Berlin, 1861. 4o. 1860, p. 81-186.) *EE Prud'homme, Evariste. See Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich. Vartan the Great. Extrait de l'histoire universelle de Vartan le grand. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. fo. v. 1, p. 431-443.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Brosset, Marie Felicite. Analyse critique de la Vseobshchaia istoriia de Vardan, edition princeps du texte armenien et traduction russe par M. N. Emin, par M. Brosset. 1 p.l., 30 p. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Memoires. St. Petersbourg, 1862. fo. serie 7, tome 4, no. 9.) *QCB BIOGRAPHY Abuhaiatian, Hagop. Pastor Hagop Abuhaiatian von Urfa. Eine Selbstbiographie. (Der Christliche Orient. Westend-Berlin, 1897. 4o. 1897, p. 468-472, 514-521.) †*OAA Anderson, Antony. Hovsep Pushman: an appreciation. (New Armenia. New York, 1918. fo. v. 10, p. 30-31.) †*ONK Avtaliantz, John, baron. A short memoir of Mechithar Ghosh, the Armenian legislator. By Johannes Avdall. (Asiatic Society of Bengal. Journal. Calcutta, 1840. 8o. v. 9, p. 967-972.) *OHA Barres, Maurice. Tigran Yergat. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4o. v. 4, no. 2. p. 7-9.) †*ONK Brosset, Marie Felicite. Notice sur le diacre armenien Zakaria Ghabonts, auteur des Memoires historiques sur les Sofis, XVe-XVIIe s. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1874. fo. tome 19, col. 320-333.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1876. tome 7, p. 93-112, *OAA. ---- Le pretendu masque de fer armenien, ou autobiographie d'Avetik, patriarche de Constantinople, avec pieces jusificatives [sic] officielles. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1874-75. fo. tome 19, col. 186-197; tome 20, col. 1-100.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1876. tome 7, p. 1-18, 179-322. *OAA. Chirol, Sir Valentine. A great Armenian [Nubar Pasha]. (Ararat. London, 1918. 8o. v. 6, p. 87-91.) *ONK Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis. See Wardrop, Marjory, and J. O. Wardrop. Holynski, Aleksander Jan Joachim. Nubar Pacha devant l'histoire. Paris: E. Dentu [1886]. 2 p.l., viii, 148 p. 12o. BLA Kassabian, Dr. Mihran K. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4o. v. 4, no. 4, p. 1-3.) †*ONK Maghak-Teopileantz, Madteos V. Gensakroutiun yereveli arants. [A biographical dictionary.] Venice, 1839. 2 v. 8o. *ONK Mouchek Yebiscobos (Seropian). Madteos II Izmirlian. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4o. v. 4, no. 9, p. 1-3.) †*ONK N., W., and S. M. Hovannes Aivazovsky. A biographical sketch. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. fo. v. 8, p. 362-363.) †*ONK Najib Makhluf. Nubar Pasha. [A life of Nubar Pasha.] Cairo, 1899. 222 p., 19 pl. 8o. *OFS Arabic text. Neumann, Carl Friedrich. Memoire sur la vie et les ouvrages de David, philosophe armenien du 5. siecle de notre ere et principalement sur ses traductions de quelques ecrits d'Aristote. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1829. 8o. serie 2, v. 3, p. 49-86, 97-153.) *OAA S., A. G. General Yeprem Khan. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 5, p. 359-361.) †*ONK Seropian, Moushek. See Mouchek Yebiscobos (Seropian). Sevasly, Mrs. Marie. Bedros Atamian. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8o. v. 1, p. 86-88.) *ONK Tcheraz, Minas. Kamar-Katiba. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9. p. 121-123.) †*ONK Kamar-Katiba was the pseudonym of Raphael Patkanian. ---- Saiat-Nova. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 91-94.) †*ONK ---- Saiat-Nova, sa vie et ses chansons. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1893. 8 deg.. 1893, p. 497-508.) *OAA Tchobanian, Archag. Gregory of Narek. From the French of Arshag Tchobanian. (Armenia. Boston, 1907. 4 deg.. v. 3, no. 4, p. 8-13; no. 5, p. 18-24; no. 6, p. 7-16; no. 7, p. 37-44.) †*ONK Thoumaian, G. An Armenian diplomat in the service of Napoleon a hundred years ago. (Ararat. London, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 514-516.) *ONK Mir-David Khan. Vittoria Aganoor Pompily. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 2, p. 1-3.) *ONK Wardrop, John Oliver. See Wardrop, Marjory, and J. O. Wardrop. Wardrop, Marjory, and J. O. Wardrop. Life of St. Nino. [The Armenian version of Djouansher translated by F. C. Conybeare.] Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1900. 88 p. 8 deg.. (Studia Biblica et Ecclesiastica. v. 5, part 1.) *YIP Yeremian, Simeon. Azkahin temker kraked Hayer. [Biographies of Armenian writers.] part 1-8. Venice, 1913-14. 8 v. 12 deg.. *ONP SOCIAL LIFE Adger, John Bailey. My life and times, 1810-1899. Richmond, Va.: Presbyterian Committee of Publication [1899]. 681 p., 2 ports. 8 deg.. AN B., E. An Armenian wedding. (Leisure hour. London, 1877. 4 deg.. 1877, p. 70-71.) *DA Barkley, Henry C. A ride through Asia Minor and Armenia: giving a sketch of the characters, manners and customs of both the Mussulman and Christian inhabitants. London: J. Murray, 1891. x, 350 p. 12 deg.. BBS Barton, James Levi. Armenian qualifications for success. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 259-261.) †*ONK Bedickian, S. V. How the Armenians keep the New Year and Christmas. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 3, no. 2, p. 8-12.) †*ONK Blackwell, Alice Stone. Armenian virtues. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 4, p. 9-10.) †*ONK Burgin, G. B. The Armenian at home. (Cassell's family magazine. London, 1897. 8 deg.. May, 1897, p. 655-660.) *DA Dadian, Mek. B. La societe armenienne contemporaine. Les Armeniens de l'empire ottoman. (Revue des deux mondes. Paris, 1867. 8 deg.. periode 2, v. 69, p. 903-928.) *DM Dan, Demeter. Glaube und Gebraeuche der Armenier bei der Geburt, Hochzeit und Beerdigung. (Zeitschrift fuer oesterreichische Volkskunde. Wien, 1904. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 10, p. 96-106.) †ZBA Distribution des prix du College armenien de Paris. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1861-62. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 14, p. 241-246.) *OAA Dulaurier, Edouard. Les Armeniens en Autriche, en Russie et en Turquie. La societe armenienne au XIXe siecle. (Revue des deux mondes. Paris, 1854. 8 deg.. annee 24, tome 6, p. 209-265.) *DM Dzotsikian, S. M. Arnutiun. [An account of social life and customs among the Armenians.] Paris, 1914. 158 p. 8 deg.. *ONK Elton, L. M., translator. See Nazarbek, Avetis. Garnett, Lucy Mary Jane. An Armenian wedding. (Argosy. London, 1900. 8 deg.. v. 70, p. 347-350.) *DA ---- The women of Turkey and their folk-lore. London: D. Nutt, 1893. 3 p.l., 546 p. 8 deg.. SNH Keworkian, Komitas. Armeniens volkstuemliche Reigentaenze. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 1, p. 87-96.) *ONL Kurkjian, Vahan. The Armenian Benevolent Union. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4 deg.. v. 5, p. 231-234.) †*ONK Macfarlane. Moeurs armeniennes. Demande de mariage. (Nouvelles annales des voyages. Paris, 1831. 8 deg.. tome 49, p. 118-121.) KAA Nazarbek, Avetis. Through the storm. Pictures of life in Armenia. Translated by Mrs. L. M. Elton, with a prefatory note by F. York Powell. London: John Murray, 1899. xxvii, 322 p. 8 deg.. BBY Ohanian, Armene. En Armenie (mon enfance). (Mercure de France. Paris, 1916. 8 deg.. tome 118, p. 452-465.) *DM Petermann, Julius Heinrich. Ueber die Musik der Armenier. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1851. 8 deg.. Bd. 5, p. 365-372 and 12 p. music.) *OAA Societe de Sunie formee a Smyrne, pour la propagation de l'instruction morale et des lumieres parmi la nation armenienne. [Reglemens actuels.] Smyrne: W. Griffitt, 1844. 20 p. 8 deg.. BBH p.v.4 T., A. B. The Armenian Christmas and New Year. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 8, p. 4-7.) †*ONK Terzian, Paul. Religious customs among the Armenians. (Catholic world. New York, 1900. 8 deg.. v. 71, p. 305-316, 500-512.) *DA ECONOMICS AND INDUSTRIES France.--Direction de Commerce Exterieur. Rapports commerciaux des agents diplomatiques et consulaires de France. Paris, 1892-1911. 8 deg.. TLG Commerce d'Erzeroum. 1900. 18 p. series 1899-date, no. 163. Commerce du vilayet de Diarbekir. 1891. 10 p. series 1890-99, no. 30. Situation commerciale, agricole, economique et industrielle du vilayet d'Erzeroum. 1892. 5 p. series 1890-99, no. 21. Situation commerciale et industrielle du vilayet de Siwas. 1911. 15 p. series 1899-date, no. 953. Situation economique et mouvement commercial d'Erzeroum. 1906. 20 p. series 1899-date, no. 661. Situation economique du vilayet d'Erzeroum. 1902. 28 p. series 1899-date, no. 303. Situation economique du vilayet de Siwas. 1899. 28 p. series 1899-date, no. 49. 1901. 16 p. series 1899-date, no. 149. Great Britain.--Foreign Office. Diplomatic and consular reports. Annual series. London, 1887-1914. 8 deg.. TLG Report on the trade, etc., of the consular district of Erzeroum. 1886. 1 p.l., 11 p., 1 l. no. 192. 1886. 1 p.l., 6 p. no. 212. 1893. 1 p.l., 13(1) p. no. 1426. 1894. 1 p.l., 11 p. no. 1608. 1895. 1 p.l., 5(1) p. no. 1821. 1896. 1 p.l., 11 p., 1 l. no. 1976. 1897. 1 p.l., 15(1) p. no. 2163. 1898. 1 p.l., 19 p. no. 2233. 1899. 10 p. no. 2477. 1900. 15(1) p. no. 2657. 1901. 20 p. no. 2792. 1902. 10 p. no. 3003. 1903. 9(1) p. no. 3224. 1904. 9(1) p. no. 3442. 1905. 9(1) p. no. 3652. 1906. 16 p. no. 3851. 1907. 19(1) p., 1 map. no. 4115. 1908. 18 p., 1 l., 1 map. no. 4389. 1909. 19(1) p. no. 4545. 1910. 20 p., 1 l. no. 4734. 1911. 10 p. no. 4985. 1912. 8 p., 1 l. no. 5159. 1913. 13 p., 1 l. no. 5370. Report on the trade of the vilayets of Van and Hekkiari. 1885/6. 1 p.l., 7 p., 1 l. no. 165. Kachouni, Manouel V. Bardizbanoutiun. [Gardening.] Venice, 1899. 315 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONPA ---- Bdghapanoutiun. [Fruit-raising.] Venice, 1899. 308 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. *ONPA ---- Gatnapanoutiun. [Dairying.] Venice, 1901. 173 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONPA ---- Meghouapoudzoutiun. [Bee-culture.] Venice, 1895. 237 p. 8 deg.. *ONPA Langlois, Victor. Du commerce, de l'industrie et de l'agriculture de la Karamanie (Asie-Mineure). (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1856. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 3, p. 265-280.) *OAA MacGregor, John. Turkish Armenia. (In his: Commercial statistics. London, 1850. 2. ed. 4 deg.. v. 2, p. 108-124.) TL Morgan, Jacques Jean Marie de. Armenian activities. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 229-230.) †*ONK Nalpandian, Mikahel. Yergrakordzoutiunu orbes oughigh janabarh. [Agriculture.] Boston, 1910. 3 p.l., 9-182 p. 12 deg.. *ONPA Turkish Empire. Salnamah. [Official report of the vilayet of Bitlis.] Bitlis, 1900. 235 p. 12 deg.. *OPK ---- Salnamah. [Official report of the vilayet of Diarbekir.] Diarbekir, 1903. 7 p.l., 224 p., 1 table. 8 deg.. *OPK ---- Salnamah. [Official report of the vilayet of Erzerum for the year 1312 A. H.] Erzerum, 1894. 270 p. 8 deg.. *OPK ---- Salnamah. [Official report of the vilayet of Sivas.] Sivas, 1907. 272 p., 2 l., 25 pl., 3 tables. 8 deg.. *OPK ---- Salnamah. [Official report of the vilayet of Van.] Van, 1897. 215 p. 8 deg.. *OPK Varandian, Mikael. Armenian aptitudes. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 326-327.) †*ONK Das Vilayet Erzerum. (Germany.--Reichsamt des Innern. Berichte ueber Handel und Industrie. Berlin, 1912. 8 deg.. Bd. 17, p. 6-17.) TLG FOLKLORE AND MYTHOLOGY Bolton, Henry Carrington. Armenian folk-lore, n. t.-p. [Boston, 1896.] 293-296 p. 8o. ZBG p.v.6 Repr.: Journal of American folk-lore, v. 9, p. 293-296, HBA. C., E. Armenian folk songs. (Fraser's magazine. London, 1876. 8o. new series, v. 13, p. 283-297.) *DA Collins, F. B., translator. Armenian folk-tales. The youth who would not tell his dream. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 6, p. 82-84.) †*ONK Gelzer, Heinrich. Zur armenischen Goetterlehre. (Koeniglich Saechsische Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften. Berichte ueber die Verhandlungen: Philol.-hist. Classe. Leipzig, 1896. 8o. Bd. 48, p. 99-148.) *EE Haigazn, Edouard. Legendes et superstitions de l'Armenie. (Revue des traditions populaires. Paris, 1895. 8o. v. 10, p. 296-297.) ZBA Harris, James Rendel. Notes from Armenia; in illustration of The golden bough. (Folk-lore. London, 1904. 8o. v. 15, p. 427-446.) ZBA Huet, G. Les contes populaires d'Armenie. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8o. annee 1, p. 254-259.) *ONK Keljik, Bedros A. See Zartarian, R. Lalayantz, Erwand. Legendes et superstitions de l'Armenie. (Revue des traditions populaires. Paris, 1895. 8o. v. 10, p. 1-5, 119-120, 193-197.) ZBA Lehmann-Haupt, Ferdinand Friedrich Karl. Religionsgeschichtliches aus Kaukasien und Armenien. (Archiv fuer Religionswissenschaft. Tuebingen, 1900. 8o. Bd. 3, p. 1-17.) ZAA Negelein, Julius von. Der armenische Volksglaube. (Globus. Braunschweig, 1900. fo. v. 78, p. 288-293.) †KAA Seklemian, A. G. Armenian folk-tales. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4o. v. 4, no. 10, p. 11-14.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. The bald-headed orphan. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4o. v. 4, no. 12, p. 8-12.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. The betrothed of destiny. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 5, p. 238-240.) †*ONK Reprinted from his The golden maiden, p. 9-14. ---- Armenian folk-tales. The bird of luck. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 5, p. 212-216.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. Father Myriad. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 5, p. 378-379.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. Julita. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 6, p. 118-122.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. The man and the snake. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 5, p. 340-342.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. Nahabed's daughter. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 5, p. 304-306.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. The poor widow's son. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4o. v. 6, p. 337-340.) †*ONK Reprinted from his The golden maiden, p. 141-148. ---- Armenian folk-tales. Prince Pari and the beasts. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4o. v. 5, p. 83-85.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. Reed-maid. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4o. v. 5, p. 110-114.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. Reynard and Bruno. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 6, p. 23-25.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. Shapoor, the hunter's son. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 5, p. 145-147, 174-177.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. The shepherd and the shepherdess. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4o. v. 5, p. 275-276.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. The snake child. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4o. v. 5, p. 15-19, 48-53.) †*ONK ---- Armenian folk-tales. The youngest of the three. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4o. v. 6, p. 185-187, 216-219.) †*ONK Reprinted from his The golden maiden, p. 15-31. ---- Armenian folk-tales. Zoolvisia. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4o. v. 6, p. 279-284.) †*ONK Reprinted from his The golden maiden, p. 59-72. ---- The fisherman's son. An Armenian fairy tale. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4o. v. 4, no. 5, p. 7-11.) †*ONK ---- The golden maiden and other folk tales and fairy stories told in Armenia. Introduction by Alice Stone Blackwell. Cleveland: The Helman-Taylor Co., 1898. xxi, 224 p., 1 pl. 12o. ZBIO ---- Unseen beauty. An Armenian folk-tale. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. fo. v. 9, p. 360-361.) †*ONK Tcheraz, Minas. Notes sur la mythologie armenienne. (Transactions of the ninth International Congress of Orientalists. London, 1893. 8o. v. 2, p. 822-845.) *OAA Wilhelm, Eugene. Analogies in the Iranian and Armenian folklore. (In: Spiegel memorial volume. Bombay, 1908. 4o. p. 65-83.) †*OMA Wingate, Mrs. J. S. Armenian folk-tales. (Folk-lore. London, 1910-12. 8o. v. 21, p. 217-222, 365-371, 507-511; v. 22, p. 77-80, 351-361, 476-484; v. 23, p. 94-102, 220-223.) ZBA ---- Armenian folk-tales. Translated by Mrs. J. S. Wingate. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4o. v. 4, no. 8, p. 14-15; no. 9, p. 15-17.) †*ONK ---- Armenian stories. Translated by Mrs. J. S. Wingate. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4o. v. 4, no. 6, p. 11-12.) †*ONK Zartarian, R. How death came to earth. An Armenian folk-lore. [Translated by Bedros A. Keljik.] (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4o. v. 4, no. 1, p. 4-5.) †*ONK LAW Aptowitzer, V. Beitraege zur mosaischen Rezeption im armenischen Recht. Wien: A. Hoelder, 1907. 42 p. 8o. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Classe. Bd. 157, Abh. 4.) *EF ---- Zur Geschichte des armenischen Rechtes. (Wiener Zeitschrift fuer die Kunde des Morgenlandes. Wien, 1907. 8o. Bd. 21, p. 251-267.) *OAA Avtaliantz, John. On the laws and law-books of the Armenians. By Johannes Avdall. (Asiatic Society of Bengal. Journal. Calcutta, 1841. 8o. v. 10, part 1, p. 235-250.) *OHA Basmadjian, K. J. See Nerses of Lambron. Bischoff, Ferdinand. Das alte Recht der Armenier in Lemberg. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Classe. Wien, 1862. 8o. Bd. 40, p. 255-302.) *EF Brosset, Marie Felicite. Details sur le droit public armenien, extraits du code georgien du roi Wakhtang, et traduits du georgien par M. Brosset. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1832. 8o. serie 2, v. 9, p. 21-30.) *OAA Karst, Josef. Armenisches Rechtsbuch ediert und kommentiert von Josef Karst. Strassburg: K. J. Truebner, 1905. 2 v. in 1. fo. †*ONP Bd. 1. Sempadscher Kodex aus dem 13. Jahrhundert oder mittelarmenisches Rechtsbuch ... hrsg. und uebersetzt von Josef Karst. Bd. 2. Sempadscher Kodex aus dem 13. Jahrhundert in Verbindung mit dem grossarmenischen Rechtsbuch des Mechithar Gosch aus dem 12. Jahrhundert ... erlaeutert von Josef Karst. Klidschian, Arsen. Das armenische Eherecht und die Grundzuege der armenischen Familienorganisation. Stuttgart: Druck der Union deutsche Verlagsgesellschaft, 1911. iv, 127 p. 8o. SNV Bibliography, p. 1-2. Nerses of Lambron. Kaghakahin orenk. [Political laws, translated by K. J. Basmadjian.] Paris: Banaser, 1907. 43 p. 8o. *ONK Supplement to Banaser, v. 9. SCIENCE Basmadjian, K. J. Les livres de medecine chez les Armeniens. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1915. 8o. serie 11, v. 5, p. 383-386.) *OAA Brosset, Marie Felicite. Notice sur un manuscrit armenien nouvellement acquis pour la Bibliotheque imperiale publique. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1879. fo. tome 25, col. 277-282.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1881. tome 8, p. 613-621, *OAA. A manuscript, treating of astronomy and astrology, the author of which is unknown. Dirohyan, Hagop V. Ousoumn pnagan ev pnapanagan kidoutiants. [Study of natural and physical science.] Venice, 1915. 4 p.l., 532 p. 8o. *ONPA Dwight, William B. American bank notes and Dr. Seropyan. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. fo. v. 9, p. 309-312.) †*ONK Gabrielian, M. S. Serahin aroghzapanoutiun. [Sex hygiene.] Boston, 1915. 3 p.l., 9-192 p., 4 l., 1 pl. 8o. *ONPA Hampartsoumian, Hovnan A. Arouyesd madaharoutian. [Hypnotism.] Lynn, Mass., 1909. 4 p.l., 100 p. 12o. *ONPA Hampoian, H. A. See Hampartsoumian, Hovnan A. Kachouni, Manouel V. Arouisdapanoutiun gam shdimaran kidiliats. [Technology or applied science.] Venice, 1909. 720 p. 8 deg.. *ONPA Mkhithar. Mechithar's des Meisterarztes aus Her "Trost bei Fiebern." Nach dem Venediger Drucke vom Jahre 1832 zum ersten Male aus dem Mittelarmenischen uebersetzt und erlaeutert von Dr. med. Ernst Seidel. Leipzig: J. A. Barth, 1908. v p., 1 l., 308 p., 1 l. 4 deg.. †*ONP At head of title-page: Gedruckt mit Unterstuetzung der Puschmann-Stiftung an der Universitaet Leipzig. Pilibbosian, Hapet M. Kordznagan aroghzapanoutiun. [Practical hygiene.] Boston, 1911. 406 p., 4 l. 8 deg.. *ONPA Seidel, Ernst. See Mkhithar. Varzhabedian, M. A. Veneragan akhder ev abaka Hay serountu. [The future of the Armenian race.] New York, 1916. 2 p.l., 7-41 p. 8 deg.. *ONPA GEOLOGY AND NATURAL HISTORY Abich, Hermann. Der Ararat, in genetischer Beziehung betrachtet. 1 pl. (Deutsche geologische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Berlin, 1870. 8 deg.. Bd. 22, p. 69-91.) PTA ---- Ein Cyclus fundamentaler barometrischer Hoehenbestimmungen auf dem armenischen Hochlande. 55 p. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Memoires. St. Petersbourg, 1880. f deg.. serie 7, v. 27.) *QCB ---- Die Fulguriten im Andesit des kleinen Ararat, nebst Bemerkungen ueber oestliche Einfluesse bei der Bildung elektrischer Gewitter. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Mathematisch-naturwissenschaftliche Classe. Wien, 1870. 8 deg.. Bd. 60, Abtheilung 1, p. 153-161.) *EF ---- Geologische Skizzen aus Transkaukasien. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin: Classe physico-mathematique. St. Petersbourg, 1847. f deg.. v. 5, col. 321-343.) *QCB ---- [Observations sur le mont Ararat.] 1 pl. (Societe geologique de France. Bulletin. Paris, 1851. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 8, p. 265-271.) PTA ---- Ueber die Lage der Schneegraenze und die Gletscher der Gegenwart im Kaukasus. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1878. f deg.. tome 24, col. 258-282.) *QCB ---- Ueber das Steinsalz und seine geologische Stellung im russischen Armenien. 11 pl. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Memoires: Sciences mathematiques et physiques. Saint Petersbourg, 1859. f deg.. serie 6, tome 7, p. 59-150.) *QCB ---- Vergleichende Grundzuege der Geologie des Kaukasus wie der armenischen und nordpersischen Gebirge. 8 pl. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Memoires: Sciences mathematiques et physiques. Saint Petersbourg, 1859. f deg.. serie 6., tome 7, p. 359-534.) *QCB ---- Zur Geologie des suedoestlichen Kaukasus. Bemerkungen von meinen Reisen im Jahre 1865. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1866. f deg.. tome 10, col. 21-42.) *QCB Bonney, T. G. Notes on some rocks from Ararat. (Geological magazine. London, 1905. 8 deg.. new series, decade 5, v. 2, p. 52-58.) PTA Buhse. Vorlaeufiger botanischer Bericht ueber meine Reise durch einen Theil Armeniens in den Monaten April und Mai 1847. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin: Classe physico-mathematique. St. Petersbourg, 1849. f deg.. v. 7, col. 101-108.) *QCB Chikhachov, Piotr Aleksandrovich. Asie Mineure; description physique, statistique et archeologique de cette contree, par P. de Tchihatcheff. Partie 1-4. Paris: Gide et J. Baudry, 1853-69. 6 v. in 8. 4 deg.. KCB and †KCB Partie 4 published by L. Guerin. Partie 1. Geographie physique comparee. Text and atlas. Partie 2. Climatologie et zoologie. Partie 3. Botanique. 2 v. Partie 4. Geologie. 3 v. ---- Sur l'orographie et la constitution geologique de quelques parties de l'Asie Mineure et de l'Armenie. (Institut de France.--Academie des sciences. Comptes rendus. Paris, 1858. 4 deg.. v. 47, p. 118-120, 216-219, 446-448, 515-517, 667-668.) *EO Forel, F. A. Les echantillons de limon dragues en 1879 dans les lacs d'Armenie. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1880. f deg.. tome 26, col. 571-576.) *QCB Gylling, Hjalmar. Notes on the microscopical structure of some eruptive rocks from Armenia and the Caucasus. (Mineralogical magazine. London, 1887. 8 deg.. v. 7, p. 155-160.) PWA Hughes, Thomas McKenny. Notes on some volcanic phenomena in Armenia. (Nature. London, 1898. 4 deg.. v. 57, p. 392-394.) OA Kharajian, Hagop A. Regional geology and mining of Armenia. New York: Nerso Press, 1915. 72 p., 1 folded diagr., 4 folded maps. 8 deg.. PVR Bibliography, p. 70-72. Loftus, William Kennett. On the geology of portions of the Turko-Persian frontier, and of the districts adjoining. 1 map. (Geological Society of London. Quarterly journal. London, 1854-55. 8 deg.. v. 10, p. 464-469; v. 11, p. 247-344.) PTA McGregor, P. J. C. Notes on birds observed at Erzerum. (Ibis. London, 1917. 8 deg.. series 10, v. 5, p. 1-30.) QMA Martens, E. v. Aufzaehlung der von Dr. Alexander Brandt in Russisch-Armenien gesammelten Mollusken. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1880. f deg.. tome 26, col. 142-158.) *QCB Oswald, Felix. Armenien. Uebersetzung von Otto Wilckens. Heidelberg: C. Winter, 1912. 40 p., 2 charts, 1 diagr. 8 deg.. (Handbuch der regionalen Geologie. Bd. 5, Abt. 3, Heft 10.) PVX Bibliography, p. 36-39. ---- Zur tektonischen Entwicklungsgeschichte des armenischen Hochlandes. (Petermanns Mitteilungen. Gotha, 1910. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 56, Halbband 1, p. 8-14, 69-74, 126-132.) KAA Saparian, Hamazasb. Pousapanoutiun. [Botany.] Venice, 1884. 248 p. 12 deg.. *ONPA ---- Yergrapanoutiun. [Geology.] Venice, 1893. 3 p.l., 215 p. 12 deg.. *ONPA Schaffer, Franz X. Grundzuege des geologischen Baues von Tuerkisch-Armenien und dem oestlichen Anatolien. 1 map. (Petermanns Mitteilungen. Gotha, 1907. 4 deg.. Bd. 53, p. 145-153.) KAA Sieger, Robert. Die Schwankungen der armenischen Seen. (Globus. Braunschweig, 1894. f deg.. Bd. 65, p. 73-75.) †KAA ---- Die Schwankungen der hocharmenischen Seen seit 1800 in Vergleichung mit einigen verwandten Erscheinungen. (Kaiserlich Koeniglich geographische Gesellschaft. Mittheilungen. Wien, 1888. 8 deg.. Bd. 31, p. 95-115, 159-181, 390-426.) KAA Strecker, Wilhelm. Ueber die wahrscheinliche aeltere Form des Wan-Sees. (Gesellschaft fuer Erdkunde. Zeitschrift. Berlin, 1869. 8 deg.. Bd. 4, p. 549-552.) KAA Tristram, H. B. Ornithological notes of a journey through Syria, Mesopotamia, and southern Armenia in 1881. (Ibis. London, 1882. 8 deg.. series 4, v. 6, p. 402-419.) QMA Wachter, Wilhelm. Die kaukasisch-armenische Erdbebenzone. (Zeitschrift fuer Naturwissenschaften. Stuttgart, 1902. 8 deg.. Bd. 75, p. 53-64.) PQA Wagner, Moriz. Aus dem Tagebuch eines deutschen Naturforschers in Armenien [Moriz Wagner]. (Ausland. Stuttgart, 1846. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 19, p. 957-959, 961-963, 966-967, 970-971, 1005-1007, 1010-1011.) †KAA ---- Beitraege zur Kenntniss der Naturverhaeltnisse im tuerkisch-armenischen Hochlande. (Ausland. Stuttgart, 1851. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 24, p. 205-207, 210-211.) †KAA Wilckens, Otto. See Oswald, Felix. Yeremian, Simeon. Nor gentanapanoutiun ev martagazmoutiun badmagan ev ngarakragan. [An historical and descriptive treatise on zoology and physiology.] Venice, 1896. 3 p.l., 553 p. 8 deg.. *ONPA ---- Nor hankapanoutiun ngarakragan ev badmagan. [A descriptive and historical treatise on mineralogy.] Venice, 1898. 4 p.l., 175 p. 12 deg.. *ONPA Zahn, Gustav W. von. Die Stellung Armeniens im Gebirgsbau von Vorderasien unter besonderer Beruecksichtigung der tuerkischen Teile. Berlin: E. S. Mittler & Sohn, 1906. vi p., 1 l., 90 p., 2 maps. 4 deg.. (Berlin.--Universitaet: Institut fuer Meereskunde und Geographisches Institut. Veroeffentlichungen. Heft 10.) KAA LANGUAGE Adjarian, H. Classification des dialectes armeniens. Paris: H. Champion, 1909. 5 p.l., 88 p., 1 map. 4 deg.. (Ecole pratique des hautes etudes. Bibliotheque: Sciences historiques et philologiques. fasc. 173.) *EN ---- Lautlehre des Van-Dialekts. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 1, p. 74-86, 121-138.) *ONL ---- S. Mesropi ev krerou kiudi badmoutian aghpiurnern ou anonts knnoutiunu. [The history of St. Mesrop and the discovery of the Armenian alphabet.] Paris: Banaser, 1907. 40 p. 8 deg.. *ONK Supplement to Banaser, v. 9. Aganoon, Arratoon Isaac. A dissertation on the antiquity of the Armenian language. With some notes and observations by the late T. M. Dickenson. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1837. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 333-344.) *OAA Agop, Joannes. Grammatica Latina, Armenice explicata. Romae: Typis Sacrae-Congregationis de Propaganda Fide, 1675. 214 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONL Bound with his: Puritas Haygica; seu, Grammatica Armenica. Romae, 1675. 8 deg.. ---- Puritas Haygica; seu, Grammatica Armenica. Romae: Typis Sacrae Congregationis de Propaganda Fide, 1675. 3 p.l., 246 p., 2 l. 8 deg.. *ONL ---- Puritas linguae Armenicae. Romae: ex Typographia Sacrae Congregationis de Propaganda Fide, 1674. 215 p. 8 deg.. *ONL Bound with his: Puritas Haygica; seu, Grammatica Armenica. Romae, 1675. 8 deg.. Alphabetum Armenum cum Oratione dominicali; Salutatione angelica; Initio Evangelii S. Johannis, et Cantico poenitentiae. [Edited by G. C. Amaduzzi.] Romae: Typis Sacrae Congregationis de Propaganda Fide, 1784. 32 p. 8 deg.. RAH p.v.2 Amaduzzi, G. C. See Alphabetum Armenum. Arachin tasakirk mangants. [First reader for children.] New York, 1866. 131 p. 16 deg.. *ONL Aucher, Paschal. See Aukerian, Haroutiun. Aukerian, Haroutiun. A dictionary English and Armenian by Father Paschal Aucher. With the assistance of J. Brand. Venice: S. Lazarus, 1821-25. 2 v. 8 deg.. *R-*ONL v. 2. A dictionary Armenian and English by John Brand. With the assistance of Father Paschal Aucher. ---- Dictionnaire abrege francais-armenien par le P. Paschal Aucher ... aux depens de M. Garabied Duz. [Venise: Academie armenienne de S. Lazare,] 1812-17. 2 v. 8 deg.. *ONL Tome 2. Dictionnaire abrege armenien-francais. ---- A grammar Armenian and English. By Father Paschal Aucher. Venice: Armenian Academy, 1819. 4 p.l., 334 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. *ONL ---- Grammar English and Armenian by Father Paschal Aucher. Venice: Armenian Academy, 1817. 4 p.l., 181 p., 2 l. 12 deg.. *ONL Aukerian, Haroutiun, and G. G. N. Byron, 6. Baron Byron. A grammar, Armenian and English, by P. Paschal Aucher and Lord Byron. Venice: printed in the Armenian monastery of St. Lazarus, 1873. 144 p. 12 deg.. *ONL Aukerian, Megerdich. See Avedikian, Gabriele, Khatchadroh Surmelian and Megerdich Aukerian. Avdall, Johannes. See Avtaliantz, John. Avedikian, Gabriele, Khatchadroh Surmelian and Megerdich Aukerian. Nor parkirk Haigasyian lezui. [New dictionary of the Armenian language.] Venice, 1836-37. 2 v. 4 deg.. †*ONL Avtaliantz, John, baron. Authors of Armenian grammars, from the earliest stages of Armenian literature up to the present day. By Johannes Avdall. (Asiatic Society of Bengal. Journal. Calcutta, 1869. 8 deg.. v. 37, part 1, p. 134-138.) *OHA ---- On the invention of the Armenian alphabet. By Johannes Avdall. (Asiatic Society of Bengal. Journal. Calcutta, 1845. 8 deg.. v. 14, p. 522-526.) *OHA Baumgartner, Adolf. Ueber das Buch "die Chrie." (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1886. 8 deg.. Bd. 40, p. 457-515.) *OAA Bedrossian, Matthias. New dictionary Armenian-English. Venice: S. Lazarus Armenian Academy, 1875-79. xxx, 786 p., 1 table. 8 deg.. *R-*ONL Bellaud. Essai sur la langue armenienne. Paris: Imprimerie imperiale, 1812. viii, 96 p. 8 deg.. *ONL Beshgeturian, Azniv. Arachnort Anklierin lezvin. [Guide to the English language.] Boston: Hairenik Press, 1909. 184 p. 12 deg.. *ONL Blau, Otto. Ueber-karta, -kerta in Ortsnamen. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1877. 8 deg.. Bd. 31, p. 495-505.) *OAA Boetticher, Paul. See Lagarde, Paul Anton de. Brand, John. See Aukerian, Haroutiun. Brockelmann, Karl. Ein assyrisches Lehnwort im Armenischen. (Zeitschrift fuer Assyriologie. Weimar, 1898. 8 deg.. Bd. 13, p. 327-328.) *OCL ---- Die griechischen Fremdwoerter im Armenischen. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1893. 8 deg.. Bd. 47, p. 1-42.) *OAA ---- Ein syrischer Text in armenischer Umschrift. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1902. 8 deg.. Bd. 56, p. 616-618.) *OAA Brosset, Marie Felicite. Varietes armeniennes. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1864. f deg.. tome 7, col. 90-99.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1868. tome 5, p. 65-77, *OAA. Bugge, Sophus. Beitraege zur etymologischen Erlaeuterung der armenischen Sprache. (Zeitschrift fuer vergleichende Sprachforschung. Guetersloh, 1893. 8 deg.. Bd. 32, p. 1-87.) RAA ---- Etruskisch und Armenisch. Sprachvergleichende Forschungen. Reihe 1. Christiania: H. Aschehoug & Co., 1890. xviii, 171 p. 8 deg.. RIE Byron (6. baron), George Gordon Noel Byron. Lord Byron's Armenian exercises and poetry. Venice: in the Island of S. Lazzaro, 1870. 167 p., 2 l. 12 deg.. NCI p.v.92 ---- See also Aukerian, Haroutiun, and G. G. N. Byron, 6. Baron Byron. Calfa, Ambroise. Dictionnaire armenien-francais et francais-armenien. Paris: L. Hachette et Cie., 1861. 7 p.l., vi p., 2 l., 1032 p., 1 l. 16 deg.. *ONL Armenien-francais only. Chahan de Cirbied, Jacques. Grammaire de la langue armenienne; ou l'on expose les principes et les regles de la langue, d'apres les meilleurs grammairiens, et les auteurs originaux et suivant les usages particuliers de l'idiome haikien; redigee ... par J. Ch. Cirbied. Paris: Everat, 1823. 3 p.l., lxxxii, 820 p. 8 deg.. *ONL Reviewed by J. Zohrab in Journal asiatique, tome 2, p. 297-312; tome 3, p. 169-190, *OAA. ---- See also Denis of Thrace. Chakmakjian, H. H. Armeno-American letter writer containing a large variety of model letters adapted to all occasions: letters of friendship, letters of congratulation and condolence, letters of love, business letters. Examples from great authors. Boston: E. A. Yeran [1914]. 440 p. 8 deg.. *ONL Charpentier, Jarl. Kleine Beitraege zur armenischen Wortkunde. (Indogermanische Forschungen. Strassburg, 1909. 8 deg.. Bd. 25, p. 241-256.) RAA Ciakciak, Emmanuele. Dizionario italiano-armeno-turco. Venezia, 1804. 26, 896 p., 1 pl. 8 deg.. *ONL Cirbied, J. See Chahan de Cirbied, Jacques. Delatre, Louis. Place de l'armenien parmi les langues indo-europeennes. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1858. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 7, p. 36-46.) *OAA Denis of Thrace. Grammaire de Denis de Thrace, en grec, en armenien et en francais, accompagnee de notes et d'eclaircissemens par M. Cirbied. (Societe royale des antiquaires de France. Memoires. Paris, 1824. 8 deg.. tome 6, p. v-xxxii, 1-93.) DA Bourgeois, H. La grammaire armenienne de Denis de Thrace. (Revue de linguistique et de philologie comparee. Chalon-sur-Saone, 1911. 8 deg.. v. 44, p. 176-187.) RAA Dickenson, T. M. See Aganoon, Arratoon Isaac. Dirr, A. Praktisches Lehrbuch der ostarmenischen Sprache. Wien: A. Hartleben [1912]. viii p., 1 l., 182 p., 1 table. 16 deg.. (Die Kunst der Polyglottie. Teil 103.) *ONL Dulaurier, Edouard. See Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich. Dwight, Harrison Gray Otis. Keraganoutun Ankghiaren yev Haheren. [A grammar English and Armenian.] Smyrna, 1835. 112 p. 8 deg.. *ONL Dwight, Harrison Gray Otis, and Elias Riggs. Orthography of Armenian and Turkish proper names. (American Oriental Society. Journal. New York, 1854. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 119-121.) *OAA Esoff, G. d'. Apercu de l'etude de la langue armenienne en Europe. (Actes du huitieme Congres international des orientalistes. Leide, 1892. 8 deg.. partie 3, section 2, fasc. 1, p. 73-82.) *OAA Finck, Franz Nikolaus. Lehrbuch der neuostarmenischen Litteratursprache. Unter Mitwirkung von Stephan Kanajeanz bearbeitet von F. N. Finck. Vagarschapat: Druckerei des Klosters S. Etschmiadsin, 1902. 1 p.l., x, 141 p. 8 deg.. *ONL ---- See also Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Gardthausen, V. Ueber den griechischen Ursprung der armenischen Schrift. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1876. 8 deg.. Bd. 30, p. 74-80.) *OAA Gauthiot, Robert. Note sur l'accent secondaire en armenien. (Banaser. Paris, 1899. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 321-324.) *ONK Gjandschezian, Esnik. Beitraege zur altarmenischen nominalen Stammbildungslehre. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 1, p. 33-63.) *ONL ---- See also Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Gleye, Arthur. Ugro-finnischer Einfluss im Armenischen. (Keleti Szemle. Budapest, 1901. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 157-159.) *OAA Gray, Louis Herbert. On certain Persian and Armenian month-names as influenced by the Avesta calendar. (American Oriental Society. Journal. New Haven, 1907. 8 deg.. v. 28, p. 331-344.) *OAA Gulian, Kevork H. Elementary modern Armenian grammar. London: D. Nutt, 1902. vi p., 1 l., 196 p. 8 deg.. (Method Gaspey-Otto-Sauer.) *ONL Hagopian, Hovhan. A pocket dictionary (English-Armenian). Boston: "Ararat" Publishing Co., 1905. 292 p. 16 deg.. *ONL Hanusz, Johann. Beitraege zur armenischen Dialectologie. (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1887-89. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 181-197, 281-313; v. 2, p. 63-70, 124-132, 291-308; v. 3, p. 38-50.) *OAA Huebschmann, Heinrich. Armeniaca. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1881-92. 8 deg.. Bd. 35, p. 168-180, 654-664; Bd. 36, p. 115-134; Bd. 46, p. 324-329.) *OAA ---- Armeniaca. (Indogermanische Forschungen. Strassburg, 1906. 8 deg.. Bd. 19, p. 457-480.) RAA ---- Armeniaca. (Strassburger Festschrift zur XLVI. Versammlung deutscher Philologen und Schulmaenner. Strassburg: K. J. Truebner, 1901. 4 deg.. p. 69-79.) *C ---- Armenische Grammatik. Theil 1. Leipzig: Breitkopf & Haertel, 1897. xxii p., 1 l., 575 p. 8 deg.. (Bibliothek indogermanischer Grammatiken. Bd. 6, Theil 1.) *ONL Theil 1. Armenische Etymologie. ---- Iranisch-armenische Namen auf karta, kert, gird. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1876. 8 deg.. Bd. 30, p. 138-141.) *OAA ---- Die semitischen Lehnwoerter im Altarmenischen. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig. 1892. 8 deg.. Bd. 46, p. 226-268.) *OAA ---- Ueber Aussprache und Umschreibung des Altarmenischen. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1876. 8 deg.. Bd. 30, p. 53-73.) *OAA ---- Ueber die Stellung des Armenischen im Kreise der indogermanischen Sprachen. (Zeitschrift fuer vergleichende Sprachforschung. Berlin, 1877. 8 deg.. Bd. 22, p. 5-49.) RAA Isaverdentz, Hagopos. An easy method of learning English for the use of Armenians. Part 1-2. Venice: Armenian Typography of St. Lazaro, 1881. 255, 216. 49 p. 12 deg.. *ONL Title from cover. Joannissiany, Abgar. See Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Junker, Heinrich. Zur Flexion der altarmenischen Demonstrativa. (Zeitschrift fuer vergleichende Sprachforschung auf dem Gebiete der indogermanischen Sprachen. Goettingen, 1910. 8 deg.. Bd. 43, p. 331-351.) RAA Kanajeanz, Stephan. See Finck, Franz Nikolaus. Karamianz, N. Einundzwanzig Buchstaben eines verlorenen Alphabets. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1886. 8 deg.. Bd. 40, p. 315-319.) *OAA Karst, Josef. Aussprache und Vokalismus des Kilikisch-Armenischen. Erster Teil einer historisch-grammatischen Darstellung des Kilikisch-Armenischen. Strassburg: K. J. Truebner, 1899. 2 p.l., 74 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONL ---- Beruehrungspunkte in der Pluralbildung des armenischen und der kaukasischen Sprachen. (Verhandlungen des XIII. internationalen Orientalisten-Kongresses. Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1904. 8 deg.. p. 144-147.) *OAA ---- Historische Grammatik des Kilikisch-Armenischen. Strassburg: K. J. Truebner, 1901. xxiii, 444 p., 2 tables. 8 deg.. *ONL Meillet, Antoine. Remarques sur la grammaire historique de l'armenien de Cilicie de M. J. Karst. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1904. 8 deg.. Bd. 2, p. 18-28.) *ONL Karst, Josef. Das trilingue Medizinalglossar aus Ms. 310 der Wiener Mechitharisten-Bibliothek. Hrsg. und erlaeutert von J. Karst. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1904. 8 deg.. Bd. 2, p. 112-148.) *ONL Kraelitz-Greifenhorst, Friedrich von. Sprachprobe eines armenisch-tatarischen Dialektes in Polen. (Wiener Zeitschrift fuer die Kunde des Morgenlandes. Wien, 1912. 8 deg.. Bd. 26, p. 307-324.) *OAA ---- Studien zum Armenisch-Tuerkischen. Wien: A. Hoelder, 1912. 1 p.l., 46 p. 8 deg.. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften in Wien. Sitzungsberichte: Philosophisch-historische Klasse. Bd. 168, Abhandl. 3.) *EF Lagarde, Paul Anton de. Armenische Studien. Goettingen: Dieterich, 1877. 1 p.l., 216 p. 4 deg.. †*ONL Repr.: Koenigliche Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu Goettingen. Abhandlungen. Bd. 22, *EE. ---- Vergleichung der armenischen Consonanten mit denen des Sanskrit. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1850. 8 deg.. Bd. 4, p. 347-369.) *OAA Langlois, Victor. Memoire sur les origines de la culture des lettres en Armenie. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris. 1861-62. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 14. p. 200-223.) *OAA Lehmann-Haupt, Ferdinand Friedrich Karl. Vorschlaege zur Sammlung der lebenden armenischen Dialekte. (Verhandlungen des XIII. internationalen Orientalisten-Kongresses. Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1904. 8 deg.. p. 141-143.) *OAA Liden, Evald. Armenische Studien. Goeteborg: W. Zachrisson, 1906. 149 p. 8 deg.. (Goeteborgs Hoegskolas arsskrift. Bd. 12.) NIMA Lusignan, Guy de. Nouveau dictionnaire illustre francais-armenien. Paris: Typographie Morris pere et fils, 1900-03. 2 v. 4 deg.. †*ONL Manandian, Agop. See Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Margoliouth, David Samuel. The Syro-Armenian dialect. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1898. 8 deg.. 1898, p. 839-861.) *OAA Martin, Paulin. Des signes hieroglyphiques dans les manuscrits armeniens. 4 facs. (Congres international des orientalistes. Compte-rendu de la premiere session. Paris: Maisonneuve & Cie., 1876. 8 deg.. tome 2, p. 456-458.) *OAA Maxudianz, M. Le parler armenien d'Akn (quartier bas). Paris: P. Geuthner, 1912. xi, 146 p. 4 deg.. *ONL Bibliography, p. 1-3. Meillet, Antoine. De quelques archaismes remarquables de la declinaison armenienne. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 1, p. 139-148.) *ONL ---- Notes sur la conjugaison armenienne. (Banaser. Paris, 1900. 8 deg.. v. 2. p. 97-109.) *ONK ---- Observations sur la graphie de quelques anciens manuscrits de l'Evangile armenien. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1903. 8 deg.. serie 10, v. 2, p. 487-507.) *OAA ---- Recherches sur la syntaxe comparee de l'armenien. (Societe de linguistique de Paris. Memoires. Paris, 1898-1911. 8 deg.. v. 10, p. 241-273; v. 11, p. 369-389; v. 12, p. 407-428; v. 16, p. 92-131; v. 17. p. 1-35.) RAA Mirianischvili, Pierre. Sur le rapport mutuel entre le georgien et l'armenien. (Revue de linguistique et de philologie comparee. Chalon-sur-Saone, 1910. 8 deg.. v. 43, p. 233-270.) RAA Mseriantz, Levon. Notice sur la phonetique du dialecte armenien de Mouch. (Actes du onzieme Congres international des orientalistes. Paris, 1899. 4 deg.. section 1, p. 299-316.) *OAA Mueller, Friedrich. Armeniaca. [No.] 1-6. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Classe. Wien, 1865-90. 8 deg.. Bd. 48, p. 424-430; Bd. 64. p. 447-456; Bd. 66, p. 261-278; Bd. 78, p. 425-431; Bd. 88, p. 9-16; Bd. 122, p. 1-8.) *EF ---- Beitraege zur Conjugation des armenischen Verbums. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Classe. Wien, 1863. 8 deg.. Bd. 42, p. 327-342.) *EF ---- Beitraege zur Declination des armenischen Nomens. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Classe. Wien, 1863. 8 deg.. Bd. 44, p. 551-567.) *EF ---- Beitraege zur Lautlehre der armenischen Sprache. [Part 1-3.] (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Classe. Wien, 1862-63. 8 deg.. Bd. 38. p. 570-595; Bd. 41, p. 3-14: Bd. 42, p. 249-258.) *EF ---- Nicht-mesropische Schriftzeichen bei den Armeniern. (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 10, p. 129-132.) *OAA ---- Ueber die Stellung des Armenischen im Kreise der indogermanischen Sprachen. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Classe. Wien, 1877. 8 deg.. Bd. 84, p. 211-232.) *EF ---- Ueber den Ursprung der Vocalzeichen der armenischen Schrift. (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1894. 8 deg.. v. 8, p. 155-160.) *OAA ---- Zur Geschichte der armenischen Schrift. (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1888-90. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 245-248; v. 4, p. 284-288.) *OAA ---- Zur Wortbildungslehre der armenischen Sprache. (Orient und Occident. Goettingen, 1865. 8 deg.. Bd. 3, p. 434-445.) *OAA ---- Zwei sprachwissenschaftliche Abhandlungen zur armenischen Grammatik. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Classe. Wien, 1861. 8 deg.. Bd. 35, p. 191-199.) *EF Munkacsi, Bernhard. Ueber die "uralten armenischen Lehnwoerter" im Tuerkischen. (Keleti Szemle. Budapest, 1904. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 352-357.) *OAA Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich. Recherches sur la formation de la langue armenienne.... Memoire traduit du russe par M. Evariste Prud'homme; revu sur le texte original et annote par M. Edouard Dulaurier. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1870. 8 deg.. serie 6, v. 16, p. 125-293.) *OAA ---- Ueber die Stellung der armenischen Sprache im Kreise der Indo-Europaeischen. (Russische Revue, Monatschrift fuer die Kunde Russlands. St. Petersburg. 1880. 8 deg.. year 17, p. 70-89.) *QCA Patrubany, L. von. Zur armenischen Wortforschung. (Indogermanische Forschungen. Strassburg, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 14, p. 54-60.) RAA Pedersen, Holger. Armenisch und die Nachbarsprachen. (Zeitschrift fuer vergleichende Sprachforschung auf dem Gebiete der indogermanischen Sprachen. Guetersloh, 1906. 8 deg.. Bd. 39, p. 334-484.) RAA ---- Les pronoms demonstratifs de l'ancien armenien. Avec un appendice sur les alternances vocaliques indo-europeennes. Kobenhavn: B. Luno. 1905. 51 p. 4 deg.. (Kongeligt Dansk Videnskabernes Selskab. Skrifter. Raekke 6. Historisk og filosofisk Afdeling. Bind 6, [no.] 3.) *EH ---- Zur armenischen Sprachgeschichte. (Zeitschrift fuer vergleichende Sprachforschung auf dem Gebiete der indogermanischen Sprachen. Guetersloh, 1902. 8 deg.. Bd. 38, p. 194-240.) RAA Petermann, Julius Heinrich. Brevis linguae Armeniacae grammatica, litteratura, chrestomathia cum glossario. In usum praelectionum et studiorum privatorum. Carolsruhae: H. Reuther, 1872. xi, 111, 92 p. 2. ed. 12 deg.. (Porta linguarum Orientalium. Pars 6.) *OAC ---- Grammatica linguae Armeniacae. Berolini: G. Eichler, 1837. xii, 264 p., 3 tables. 8 deg.. *ONL ---- Ueber den Dialect der Armenier von Tiflis. (Koeniglich Preussische Akademie der Wissenschaften. Abhandlungen: Philol.-hist. Klasse. Berlin, 1867. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1866, p. 57-87.) *EE A Pocket dictionary of the English, Armenian and Turkish languages. Venice: printed at the Press of the Armenian College of S. Lazarus, 1843. 3 v. 18 deg.. *OPF Pratt, Andrew T. On the Armeno-Turkish alphabet. (American Oriental Society. Journal. New Haven, 1866. 8 deg.. v. 8, p. 374-376.) *OAA Prud'homme, Evariste. See Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich. Riggs, Elias. A brief grammar of the modern Armenian language as spoken in Constantinople and Asia Minor. [Preface signed E. Riggs.] Smyrna: W. Griffitt, 1847. 80 p. 8 deg.. *ONL ---- Inverted construction of modern Armenian. (American Oriental Society. Journal. New Haven, 1860. 8 deg.. v. 6, p. 565-566.) *OAA ---- See also Dwight, Harrison Gray Otis, and Elias Riggs. Schroeder, Johan Joachim. Hoc est Joh. Joachimi Schroederi Thesaurus linguae Armenicae, antiquae et hodiernae, cum varia praxios materia, cujus elenchum sequens pagella exhibet. Amstelodami, 1711. 8 p.l., 64, 410 p., 40 l. 8 deg.. *ONL Seklemian, A. G. The Armenian alphabet. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 6, p. 39-45.) †*ONK Settegast, Franz. Armenisches im "Daurel e Beton." (Zeitschrift fuer romanische Philologie. Halle, 1905. 8 deg.. Bd. 29, p. 413-417.) RDTA Surmelian, Khatchadroh. See Avedikian, Gabriele, Khatchadroh Surmelian and Megerdich Aukerian. Tavitian, S. De l'...(E), ou du positif de l'etre, qui est l'objet de la science positive. De l'unite des lettres ou du principe de la voix et de son harmonie absolue, qui constituent l'objet des sciences logique, musique et mathematique. Paris: P. Schmidt, 1887. 64 p. 8 deg.. *ONK p.v.2 Tiryakian, H. Hahyereni zeghdzoumneru. [Armenian abused.] New York, 1917. 63 p. 12 deg.. *ONL Torossian, Bedros R. Self-instructor in the English language, according to the latest pedagogical system, based on New York State Education Department's six year elementary course of English. New York: Violet Press, 1913. 714, 20 p. 2. ed. 8 deg.. *ONL Also Armenian title-page. Vosgian, Gomidass A. Artseren parkirk. [An Armenian-French dictionary.] Constantinople: H. Matteosian, 1893. 9 p.l., 929 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. *ONL Windischmann, Friedrich H. H. Die Grundlage des Armenischen im arischen Sprachtstamme. (Koeniglich Bayerische Akademie der Wissenschaften. Abhandlungen: Philos.-philol. Classe. Muenchen, 1847. 4 deg.. Bd. 4, Abth. 2, p. 1-49.) *EE Yeran, Edward A. Armenian-English conversation illustrated, comprising every-day conversation, letter writing, grammar, English Armenian reader, and useful informations. Boston: Yeran Press [cop. 1913]. 380 p. 3. ed. 8 deg.. *ONL Zanolli, Almo. Singolare accezione del vocabolo armeno "tirakan." (Societa asiatica italiana. Giornale. Firenze, 1907. 8 deg.. v. 20, p. 89-92.) *OAA ---- Studio sul raddoppiamento allitterazione e ripetizione nell' armeno antico. (Societa asiatica italiana. Giornale. Firenze, 1912-13. 8 deg.. v. 24, p. 1-98; v. 25, p. 305-313.) *OAA Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Unter Mitwirkung von Abgar Joannissiany hrsg. von Franz Nikolaus Finck, Esnik Gjandschezian und Agop Manandian. Bd. 1-2. Marburg: N. G. Elwert, 1903-1904. 8 deg.. *ONL Zposaran mangants. [Recreation for children, or reading lessons in religious poetry and instruction, and in natural history; translated from English into the classical Armenian language by a native under the supervision of J. B. Adger; with a vocabulary giving definitions in the modern dialect.] Smyrna: H. Hallock, 1838. 4 p.l., 288 p., 1 pl. 12 deg.. RMZ and *ONL INSCRIPTIONS Contains in addition to articles on the Van inscriptions a few on inscriptions in modern Armenian characters. Basmadjian, K. J. Note on the Van inscriptions. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1897. 8 deg.. 1897, p. 579-583.) *OAA ---- Une nouvelle inscription armeniaque ou vannique. (Actes du onzieme Congres international des orientalistes. Paris, 1899. 4 deg.. section 1, p. 257-259.) *OAA ---- Une nouvelle inscription vannique trouvee a Qizil-Qale. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1902. 8 deg.. serie 9, v. 19, p. 137-140.) *OAA ---- La plus ancienne inscription armenienne. 1 pl. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1914. 8 deg.. serie 11, v. 4, p. 160-161.) *OAA ---- Quelques observations sur l'inscription de Kelischin. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1903. 8 deg.. serie 10, v. 1, p. 554-555.) *OAA ---- La stele de Zouarthnotz. (Recueil de travaux relatifs a la philologie et a l'archeologie egyptiennes et assyriennes. Paris, 1901. 4 deg.. annee 23, p. 145-151.) *OBKG Belck, Waldemar. Eine in Russisch-Armenien neu aufgefundene, wichtige chaldische Inschrift. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1901. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1901, p. 223-226.) QOA ---- Die Keil-Inschriften in der Tigris-Quellgrotte und ueber einige andere Ergebnisse der armenischen Expedition. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1900. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1900, p. 443-466.) QOA ---- Die Kelischin-Stele und ihre chaldisch-assyrischen Keilinschriften. Mit einer Karte und drei Tafeln. Freienwalde a. O.: M. Rueger, 1904. 1 p.l., 74 col., 1 map, 3 pl. sq. 4 deg.. (Anatole. Zeitschrift fuer Orientforschung. Heft 1.) †*OAA ---- Mittheilungen ueber armenische Streitfragen. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1901. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1901, p. 284-328.) QOA Belck, Waldemar, and F. F. K. Lehmann-Haupt. Chaldische Forschungen. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin. 1895-97. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1895, p. 578-616; Jahrg. 1896, p. 309-327; Jahrg. 1897, p. 302-308.) QOA 1. Der Name "Chalder." 2. Hrn. Sayce's neuester Artikel ueber die Inschriften von Van. 3. Bauten und Bauart der Chalder. 4. Eine Canal-Inschrift Argistis I. 5. Eine chaldische Backstein-Inschrift. 6. Tiglatpileser III. gegen Sardur von Urartu. 7. Zur Frage nach dem urspruenglichen Standort der beiden assyrischen Inschriften Sardur's, Sohnes des Lutipris. ---- Inuspuas, Sohn des Menuas. (Zeitschrift fuer Assyriologie. Berlin, 1892. 8 deg.. Bd. 7, p. 255-267.) *OCL ---- Mittheilung ueber weitere Ergebnisse ihrer Studien an den neugefundenen armenischen Keilinschriften. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1892. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1892, p. 477-488.) QOA ---- Ein neuer Herrscher von Chaldia. (Zeitschrift fuer Assyriologie. Weimar, 1894. 8 deg.. Bd. 9, p. 82-99, 339-360.) *OCL ---- Ueber die Kelishin-Stelen. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1893. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1893, p. 389-400.) QOA ---- Ueber neuerlich aufgefundene Keilinschriften in russisch und tuerkisch Armenien. (Zeitschrift fuer Ethnologie. Berlin, 1892. 8 deg.. Bd. 24, p. 122-152.) QOA Bertin, George. Abridged grammars of the languages of the cuneiform inscriptions containing: I. A Sumero-Akkadian grammar; II. An Assyro-Babylonian grammar; III. A Vannic grammar; IV. A Medic grammar; V. An old Persian grammar. London: Truebner & Co., 1888. VIII, 117 p. 12 deg.. (Truebner's collection of simplified grammars. no. 17.) *OCO Brosset, Marie Felicite. De quelques inscriptions armeniennes, remarquables au point de vue chronologique. 1 fac. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1860. f deg.. tome 1, col. 399-413.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1859. tome 3, p. 735-756, *OAA. ---- Explication de diverses inscriptions georgiennes, armeniennes et grecques. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Memoires: Sciences politiques, histoire et philologie. St. Petersbourg, 1840. sq. 4 deg.. serie 6, v. 4, p. 315-446.) *QCB ---- Note sur les inscriptions armeniennes de Bolghari. 1 pl. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin scientifique. St. Petersbourg, 1838. f deg.. tome 3, col. 18-21.) *QCB ---- Notice sur la plus ancienne inscription armenienne connue. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin de la classe historico-philologique. St. Petersbourg, 1857. f deg.. tome 14, col. 118-125.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1859. tome 3, p. 1-11, *OAA. ---- Rapport sur diverses inscriptions, recueillies par MM. Jules Kaestner et Ad. Berger. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1864. f deg.. tome 7, col. 275-281.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1868. tome 5, p. 113-118, *OAA. Brosset, Marie Felicite, and E. Kunik. Notice sur deux inscriptions cuneiformes, decouvertes par M. Kaestner dans l'Armenie russe. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1863. f deg.. tome 5, col. 428-435.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863. tome 4, p. 671-680, *OAA. Carriere, Auguste. Inscriptions d'un reliquaire armenien de la collection Basilewski publiees et traduites par A. Carriere. 2 pl. (Ecole des langues orientales vivantes. Publications. Paris, 1883. 4 deg.. serie 2, v. 9, p. 167-213.) *OAF Serie 2, v. 9. Melanges orientaux. Foy, Willy. Zur Xerxes-Inschrift von Van. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1900. 8 deg.. Bd. 54, p. 406-407.) *OAA Guthe, H. Mosaiken mit armenischer Inschrift auf dem Oelberge. (Deutscher Palaestina-Verein. Mittheilungen und Nachrichten. Leipzig, 1895. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1, p. 51-53.) *PWC Guyard, Stanislas. Etudes vanniques. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1884. 8 deg.. serie 8, v. 3, p. 499-517.) *OAA ---- Les inscriptions de Van. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1880. 8 deg.. serie 7, v. 15, p. 540-543.) *OAA ---- Inscriptions de Van, les estampages de M. Deyrolle. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1883. 8 deg.. serie 8, v. 1, p. 517-523.) *OAA ---- Note sur quatre mots des inscriptions de Van. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1882. 8 deg.. serie 7, v. 19, p. 514-515.) *OAA ---- Note sur quelques particularites des inscriptions de Van. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1883. 8 deg.. serie 8, v. 1, p. 261-265.) *OAA ---- Note sur quelques passages des inscriptions de Van. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1883. 8 deg.. serie 8, v. 2, p. 306-307.) *OAA Hincks, Edward. On the inscriptions at Van. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1848. 8 deg.. v. 9, p. 387-449.) *OAA Jensen, Peter. Die hittitisch-armenische Inschrift eines Syennesis aus Babylon. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 57, p. 215-270.) *OAA ---- Die Sitze der "Urarto-Chalder" zur Zeit Tiglatpileser's I nach Belck und Lehmann. (Zeitschrift fuer Assyriologie. Weimar, 1896. 8 deg.. Bd. 11, p. 306-309.) *OCL Belck, Waldemar, and F. F. C. Lehmann-Haupt. Zu Jensen's Bemerkungen betreffs der Sitze der Chalder. (Zeitschrift fuer Assyriologie. Weimar, 1897. 8 deg.. Bd. 12, p. 113-123.) *OCL Kunik, E. See Brosset, Marie Felicite, and E. Kunik. Langlois, Victor. Inscriptions grecques, romaines, byzantines et armeniennes de la Cilicie recueillies par Victor Langlois.... Paris: A. Leleux, 1854. iv, 58 p., 1 l., 1 pl. 4 deg.. †*ONM ---- Note sur l'inscription armenienne d'un belier sepulcral a Djoulfa. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1855. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 2, p. 135-138.) *OAA Lehmann-Haupt, Ferdinand Friedrich Karl. Bericht ueber die Ergebnisse der von Dr. W. Belck und Dr. C. F. Lehmann 1898/99 ausgefuehrten Forschungsreise in Armenien. (Koeniglich Preussische Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte. Berlin, 1900. 4 deg.. 1900, p. 619-633.) *EE ---- "Chaldisch" und "Armenisch." (Recueil de travaux relatifs a la philologie et a l'archeologie. Paris, 1896. f deg.. annee 18, p. 209-217.) *OBKG ---- Chaldische Nova. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1893. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1893, p. 217-224.) QOA ---- Entgegnung auf Hrn. Belck's Einsendung "ueber die Keil-Inschriften der Tigris-Grotte und ueber einige andere Ergebnisse der armenischen Expedition." (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1900. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1900, p. 612-626.) QOA ---- Eine neue Ausgabe der auf russischem Gebiet gefundenen chaldischen Keilinschriften. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1896. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1896, p. 586-589.) QOA ---- Neugefundene Menuas-Inschriften. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1900. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1900, p. 572-574.) QOA ---- Die neugefundene Steleninschrift Rusas' II. von Chaldia. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1902. 8 deg.. Bd. 56, p. 101-115.) *OAA Belck, Waldemar. Die Steleninschrift Rusas' II. Argistihinis von Etschmiadzin. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1904. 8 deg.. Bd. 58, p. 161-197.) *OAA Lehmann-Haupt, Ferdinand Friedrich Karl. Em Schlusswort. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1904. 8 deg.. Bd. 58, p. 859-863.) *OAA Lehmann-Haupt, Ferdinand Friedrich Karl. Der Tigris-Tunnel. (Berliner Gesellschaft fuer Anthropologie, Ethnologie und Urgeschichte. Verhandlungen. Berlin, 1901. 4 deg.. Jahrg. 1901, p. 226-244.) QOA ---- Zwei unveroeffentlichte chaldische Inschriften. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig. 1904. 8 deg.. Bd. 58, p. 815-852.) *OAA ---- Zwei unveroeffentlichte Keilschrifttexte. (Hilprecht anniversary volume. Leipzig, 1909. 4 deg.. p. 256-268.) *OCK ---- See also Belck, Waldemar, and F. F. K. Lehmann-Haupt. Macler, Frederic. Mosaique orientale. 1. Epigraphica., 2. Historica. Paris: P. Geuthner, 1907. 90 p., 21. 8 deg.. *OAL Mordtmann, Andreas David. Entzifferung und Erklaerung der armenischen Keilinschriften von Van und der Umgegend. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1872. 8 deg.. Bd. 26, p. 465-696.) *OAA ---- Ueber die Keilinschriften von Armenien. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1877. 8 deg.. Bd. 31, p. 406-438.) *OAA Morgan, Jacques Jean Marie de, and J. V. Scheil. La stele de Kel-i-chin. (Recueil de travaux relatifs a la philologie et a l'archeologie egyptiennes et assyriennes. Paris, 1893. 4 deg.. annee 14, p. 153-160.) *OBKG Mueller, David Heinrich. Drei neue Inschriften von Van. (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1887. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 213-219.) *OAA ---- See also Wuensch, Josef, and D. H. Mueller. Mueller, Friedrich. Bemerkungen ueber zwei armenische Keil-Inschriften. Wien: aus der k. k. Hof- und Staatsdruckerei, 1870. 1 p.l., 6 p., 1 fac. 8 deg.. *ONM Repr.: Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Cl. Bd. 65, p. 589-594, *EF. ---- Zwei armenische Inschriften aus Galizien und die Gruendungs-Urkunde der armenischen Kirche in Kamenec Podolsk. 8 p., 1 fac. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte: Philos.-hist. Classe. Wien, 1897. 8 deg.. Bd. 135, Abh. 11.) *EF Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich. De quelques inscriptions de Van. 2 facs. (Museon. Louvain, 1882. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 541-547.) ZAA ---- Sur l'ecriture cuneiforme armeniaque et les inscriptions de Van. (Congres international des orientalistes. Compte-rendu de la premiere session. Paris: Maisonneuve & Cie., 1876. 8 deg.. tome 2, p. 425-432.) *OAA Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich, and A. H. Sayce. De quelques nouvelles inscriptions cuneiformes decouvertes sur le territoire russe. 1 fac. (Museon. Louvain, 1883. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 358-364.) ZAA Robert, Louis de. Etude philologique sur les inscriptions cuneiformes de l'Armenie. Paris: E. Leroux, 1876. 2 p.l., 196 p. f deg.. †*ONM Sandalgian, Joseph. Asorisdaniah eu Barsig sebakir artsanakroutiunk. [A treatise on Assyrian and Persian cuneiform inscriptions with extracts from them relating to the history of Ararat.] Vienna, 1901. 262 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONQ ---- L'idiome des inscriptions cuneiformes urartiques. Rome: Loescher et Co., 1898. 23 p. 4 deg.. *ONM ---- Les inscriptions cuneiformes urartiques transcrites avec une triple traduction interlineaire en armenien classique, en latin et en francais, suivies d'un glossaire et d'une grammaire. Memoire presente a l'Academie des inscriptions de France. Venise (Ile de St.-Lazare): Imprimerie-librairie des PP. Mekhitharistes, 1900. l, 506 p., 1 l., 1 map. 4 deg.. *ONM Saulcy, Louis Felicien Joseph Caignart de. Recherches sur l'ecriture cuneiforme assyrienne. Inscriptions de Van. [Lettres a M. Eugene Burnouf. Signed F. de Saulcy.] Paris: Firmin Didot freres, 1848. 1 p.l., 44 p., 1 pl. 4 deg.. *OCO Sayce, Archibald Henry. The cuneiform inscriptions of Van. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London. 1888-94. 8 deg.. new series, v. 20, p. 1-48; 1893, p. 1-39; 1894, p. 691-732.) *OAA ---- The cuneiform inscriptions of Van. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1906-11. 8 deg.. 1906, p. 611-653; 1911, p. 49-63.) *OAA ---- The cuneiform inscriptions of Van, deciphered and translated. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1882. 8 deg.. new series, v. 14, p. 377-732.) *OAA ---- Deux nouvelles inscriptions vanniques. 1 fac. (Museon. Louvain, 1884-86. 8 deg.. v. 3, p. 222-224; v. 5, p. 374-378.) ZAA ---- Fresh contributions to the decipherment of the Vannic inscriptions. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1901. 8 deg.. 1901, p. 645-660.) *OAA ---- The great inscription of Argistis on the rock of Van. (Records of the past. London [1890]. 12 deg.. new series, v. 4, p. 114-133.) *OCK ---- Inscription of Menuas, king of Ararat, in the Vannic language. (Records of the past. London [1888]. 12 deg.. new series, v. 1, p. 163-167.) *OCK ---- Les inscriptions vanniques d'Armavir. (Museon. Louvain, 1883. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 5-9.) ZAA ---- Monolith inscription of Argistis, king of Van. (Records of the past. London [1890]. 12 deg.. new series, v. 4, p. 134-136.) *OCK ---- A new inscription of the Vannic king Menuas. 1 pl. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1914. 8 deg.. 1914, p. 75-77.) *OAA ---- A new Vannic inscription. (Royal Asiatic Society. Journal. London, 1912. 8 deg.. 1912, p. 107-112.) *OAA ---- On the cuneiform inscriptions of Van. (Zeitschrift fuer vergleichende Sprachforschung. Berlin, 1877. 8 deg.. Bd. 22, p. 407-409.) RAA ---- See also Patkanov, Kerope Petrovich, and A. H. Sayce. Scheil, Jean Vincent. Inscription vannique de Melasgert. (Recueil de travaux relatifs a la philologie et a l'archeologie egyptiennes et assyriennes. Paris, 1896. 4 deg.. annee 18, p. 75-77.) *OBKG ---- Note sur l'expression vannique "gunusa haubi." (Recueil de travaux relatifs a la philologie et a l'archeologie egyptiennes et assyriennes. Paris, 1893. 4 deg.. annee 14, p. 124.) *OBKG ---- See also Morgan, Jacques Jean Marie de, and J. V. Scheil. Schulz, Ed. Memoire sur le lac de Van et ses environs. 8 facs. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1840. 8 deg.. serie 3, v. 9, p. 257-323.) *OAA Wuensch, Josef, and D. H. Mueller. Die Keil-Inschrift von Aschrut-Darga. Entdeckt und beschrieben von Josef Wuensch, publicirt und erklaert von David Heinrich Mueller. 3 pl. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Denkschriften: Philosophisch-historische Klasse. Wien, 1888. f deg.. Bd. 36, Abtheilung 2, p. 1-26.) *EF HISTORY OF LITERATURE Arnot, Robert. The Armenian literature. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 37-39.) †*ONK Reprinted in New Armenia, v. 10, p. 7-8, †*ONK. Baumstark, Anton. Die christlichen Literaturen des Orients. Leipzig: G. J. Goeschen, 1911. 2 v. 16 deg.. (Sammlung Goeschen. Nr. 527-528.) *OAT Bd. 2, p. 61-110. Das christliche Schrifttum der Armenier und Georgier. Brockelmann, Karl, and others. Geschichte des christlichen Litteraturen des Orients. Von C. Brockelmann, Johannes Leipoldt, Franz Nikolaus Finck, Enno Littmann. Leipzig: C. F. Amelang, 1907. viii, 281 p. 8 deg.. (Die Litteraturen des Ostens in Einzeldarstellungen. Bd. 7, Abteilung 2.) *OAT p. 75-130. Finck, F. N. Geschichte der armenischen Litteratur. Cayol, Henri. Litterature armenienne. (Journal asiatique de Constantinople. Constantinople, 1852. 8 deg.. tome 1, p. 73-86.) *OAA Chalatianz, Bagrat. Die armenische Literatur des 19. Jahrhunderts. Eine Skizze. (Neue Heidelberger Jahrbuecher. Heidelberg, 1905. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 14, p. 16-38.) EAA Chanazarian, G. V. La litterature armenienne. (Revue orientale et americaine. Paris, 1862. 8 deg.. tome 7, p. 192-196.) *OAA Finck, Franz Nikolaus. See Brockelmann, Karl, and others; also Schmidt, Erich, and others. Garo, Chahen. Modern Armenian literature. (Poet-lore. Boston, 1897. 8 deg.. v. 9, p. 122-126.) *DA Harnack, Adolf. Forschungen auf dem Gebiete der alten grusinischen und armenischen Litteratur. (Koeniglich Preussische Akademie der Wissenschaften. Sitzungsberichte. Berlin, 1903. 4 deg.. 1903, p. 831-840.) *EE Macler, Frederic. La chaire d'armenien a l'Ecole speciale des langues orientales vivantes. (Revue internationale de l'enseignement. Paris, 1912. 8 deg.. v. 63, p. 5-38.) SSA Minas. Armenian literature. (Armenia. Boston, 1907. 4 deg.. v. 3, no. 6, p. 27-35.) †*ONK Neumann, Carl Friedrich. Versuch einer Geschichte der armenischen Literatur, nach den Werken der Mechitaristen frei bearbeitet. Leipzig: J. A. Barth, 1836. xii, 308 p. 8 deg.. *ONP Neve, Felix. L'Armenie chretienne et sa litterature. Louvain: C. Peeters, 1886. vii, 403 p. 8 deg.. *ONK Petermann, Julius Heinrich. Ueber einige neuere Erscheinungen der armenischen Litteratur. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Zeitschrift. Leipzig, 1861. 8 deg.. Bd. 15, p. 397-406.) *OAA Raffi, Aram. Armenia: its epics, folksongs and mediaeval poetry. (In: Z. C. Boyajian, Armenian legends and poems. London [1916]. f deg.. p. 125-191.) †*ONP Schmidt, Erich, and others. Die orientalischen Literaturen. Mit Einleitung: die Anfaenge der Literatur und die Literatur der primitiven Voelker. Berlin: B. G. Teubner, 1906. ix, 419 p. 4 deg.. (Die Kultur der Gegenwart. Teil 1, Abteilung 7.) *OAT p. 282-298. Finck, F. N. Die armenische Literatur. Schrumpf, G. A. On the progress of Armenian studies. (Transactions of the ninth International Congress of Orientalists. London, 1893. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 540-553.) *OAA Sukias Somal, Placido. Quadro della storia letteraria di Armenia. Venezia: dalla Tipografia armena di S. Lazzaro, 1829. xix, 240 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONP Thumajan, Johann. Die Geschichte der classisch-armenischen Schriftsprache. (Verhandlungen des VII. internationalen Orientalisten-Congresses. Arische Section. Wien: A. Hoelder, 1888. 8 deg.. p. 69-77.) *OAA Veselovski, Yuri. Armianekaia poeziia 19 vieka i eia proiskhozhdenie. (Russkaia mysl'. Moscow, 1901. 8 deg.. 1901, no. 12, [part 2,] p. 97-123.) *QCA Armenian poetry of the nineteenth century. ---- K kharakteristikie novoi armianskoi literatury. (Viestnik Vospitaniia. Moscow, 1914. 8 deg.. v. 25, no. 4, p. 147-165.) *QCA New Armenian literature. ---- Literaturnoe tvorchestvo turetskikh armian. (Viestnik Evropy. Petrograd, 1916. 8 deg.. 1916, no. 3, p. 75-108.) *QCA Literature of the Turkish Armenians. Zavak. The earliest Armenian printing press. (Ararat. London, 1916. 8 deg.. v. 3, p. 473-481.) *ONK LITERATURE POETRY Alishan, Leo M. See Alishanian, Gheuont. Alishanian, Gheuont. Armenian popular songs translated into English by Leo M. Alishan, D. D. Venice: S. Lazarus, 1852. 2 p.l., 85 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONP ---- ---- Venice: S. Lazarus, 1888. 83 p., 1 l. 3. ed. 8 deg.. *ONP ---- The lily of Shavarshan. [Translated by Alice Stone Blackwell.] (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 8, p. 17-19.) †*ONK Leist, Arthur. Pater Leo Alischan. (In his: Litterarische Skizzen. Leipzig [1886]. 12 deg.. p. 41-51.) *ONK Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 2. Antreassian, Khorene M. See Katchoony, H. Armenian poems. Metrical version by Robert Arnot. (In: Armenian literature. London [cop. 1901]. 8 deg.. p. 45-54.) *OCY Arnot, Robert. See Armenian poems. Beshigtashlian, Megerdich. Kertouadzner ou jarer. [A collection of his poetry and speeches.] Paris, 1904. 193 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONP Leist, Arthur. Mkrtitsch Beschiktaschlian. (In his: Litterarische Skizzen. Leipzig [1886]. 12 deg.. p. 53-64.) *ONK Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 2. Blackwell, Alice Stone. Armenian poems rendered into English verse by Alice Stone Blackwell. Boston, 1917. 2 p.l., xii. 13-296 p., 3 l. 12 deg.. *ONP ---- See also Alishanian, Gheuont; also Damadian, Mihran; also Hayrig, Chrimian; also Kourghinian, Shoushanik; also Patkanian, Raphael: also Portoukalian, M.; also Raffi; also Tchobanian, Archag; also Tourian, Bedros; also Yarjanian-Siamanto, Atom; also Yergat, Tigran. Bore, Eugene. Elegie sur la prise de Constantinople, poeme inedit et extrait du manuscrit 80 armenien de la Bibliotheque royale. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1835. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 15, p. 271-298.) *OAA Boyajian, Zabelle C., compiler. Armenian legends and poems, illustrated & compiled by Zabelle C. Boyajian ... with an introduction by the Right Hon. Viscount Bryce ... and a contribution on "Armenia: its epics, folksongs and mediaeval poetry," by Aram Raffi. London: J. M. Dent & Sons, Ltd. [1916.] xvi, 195 p., 12 col'd pl. f deg.. †*ONP Bryce (1. viscount), James Bryce. See Boyajian, Zabelle C., compiler. Chant populaire sur la captivite de Leon, fils du roi Hethoum I. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 537-540.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Contes & chants armeniens recueillis, transcrits et traduits par Djelali avec preface et note explicative par Paul Passy. Fasc. 1. Paris, 1899. 16 deg.. *ONP p.v.1 Damadian, Mihran. Furfurcar. Translated by Alice Stone Blackwell. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 264.) †*ONK Djelali. See Contes & chants. Dulaurier, Edouard. Le chants populaires de l'Armenie. (Revue des deux mondes. Paris, 1852. 8 deg.. nouvelle periode, tome 14, p. 224-255.) *DM ---- Etudes sur les chants historiques et les traditions populaires de l'ancienne Armenie d'apres une dissertation de J. B. Emin. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1852. 8 deg.. serie 4, v. 19, p. 5-58.) *OAA Emin, Jean Baptiste. See Dulaurier, Edouard. Green, G. M. See Raffi. Gregory Dgha, patriarch of Armenia. Elegie du patriarche Gregoire Dgha Catholicos d'Armenie ... sur la prise de Jerusalem par Saladin. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 269-307.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Hayrig, Chrimian. The soldier's lament. [Translated by Alice Stone Blackwell.] (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 9, p. 19-20.) †*ONK Hethoum II, king of Armenia. Poeme de Hethoum II, roi d'Armenie. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 541-555.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Katchoony, H. To the martyrs of Adana. [Translated by Khorene M. Antreassian.] (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 11, p. 12.) †*ONK Khrimean, Mekertich. A meeting of kings. Translation of a posthumous work by Khrimean Hairik. Versified by A. G. Sheridan. (Ararat. London, 1915. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 436-443, 445-456.) *ONK Text and translation. Kourghinian, Shoushanik. The eagle's love. To the nightingale. Rendered into English verse by Alice Stone Blackwell. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 545-546.) *ONK Koutchak, Nahabed. Vieux chants armeniens. (La revue blanche. Paris, 1901. 8 deg.. v. 26, p. 217-221.) *DM Lalayantz, Erwand. Les anciens chants historiques et les traditions populaires de l'Armenie. (Revue des traditions populaires. Paris, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 11, p. 1-12, 129-138, 337-351.) ZBA Miller, Miss Frank. Armenian popular songs. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 4, p. 23-28.) †*ONK Mourey, Gabriel. See Tchobanian, Archag, translator. Natalie, Shahan. Songs of love and hate. The agony of my faith, Love, Prayers, To thee, Flames of hate, Persecuted rhapsodist. Boston: Hairenik Press, 1915. 166 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONP Nerses the Graceful, patriarch of Armenia. Elegie sur la prise d'Edesse par les Musulmans, par Nerses Klaietsi, patriarche d'Armenie; publiee pour la premiere fois, en armenien par J. Zohrab. Ouvrage publie par la Societe asiatique. Paris: Dondey-Dupre pere et fils, 1828. 7 p.l., 6, 112 p. 8 deg.. *ONP ---- Elegie sur la prise d'Edesse. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 223-268.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Avtaliantz, John, baron. Memoir of the life and writings of St. Nierses Clajensis, surnamed the Graceful, pontiff of Armenia. (Asiatic Society of Bengal. Journal. Calcutta, 1836. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 129-157.) *OHA Passy, Paul. See Contes & chants. Patkanian, Raphael. Cradle song from the Armenian of Raphael Patkanian. [Translated by Alice Stone Blackwell.] (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 7, p. 27-28.) †*ONK ---- The woe of Araxes. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 5, p. 13.) †*ONK Portoukalian, M. The Armenian girl. From the Armenian.... Rendered into English verse by Alice Stone Blackwell. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4 deg.. v. 5, p. 121.) †*ONK Raffi. The Lake of Van. From the Armenian of Raffi. [Translated by Alice Stone Blackwell.] (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 2-3, p. 23-25.) †*ONK ---- The Lake of Van. Translated by G. M. Green. (New Armenia. New York, 1918. f deg.. v. 10, p. 90.) †*ONK Raffi, Aram. See Boyajian, Zabelle C., compiler. Sheridan, A. G. See Khrimean, Mekertich. Siamanto. See Yarjanian-Siamanto, Atom. Tcheraz, Minas. Poetes armeniens. Bedros Tourian. Gamar-Kathipa. Saiath-Nova. Guevork Dodokhiantz. Mikael Nalbandiantz. Corene de Lusignan. Paris: E. Leroux, 1913. xi, 155 p. 16 deg.. *ONP Tchobanian, Archag. Armenia's lullaby. (Asiatic review. London, 1916. 8 deg.. v. 10, p. 441-443.) *OAA ---- Armenian poems rendered into English verse by Alice Stone Blackwell. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4 deg.. v. 5, p. 210-211.) †*ONK ---- The Armenian poetry. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 1, p. 2-3; no. 2, p. 9-10; no. 3, p. 8-9; no. 5, p. 14-15.) †*ONK ---- The epic of Armenia. Translated from the French by Alice Stone Blackwell. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 317-323.) *ONK ---- Hai Etcher. [A collection of Armenian poems, illustrated from objects in the convent at Etchmiadzin and from old illuminated manuscripts.] Paris, 1912. 54 p., 1 l., 120 p., 52 pl. 8 deg.. *ONP ---- Lullaby for Mother Armenia. From the Armenian of Archag Tchobanian. [Translated by Alice Stone Blackwell.] (Armenia. Boston, 1904. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 2, p. 19-22.) †*ONK Reprinted in New Armenia, v. 8, p. 237-238, †*ONK; and in Armenian herald, v. 1, p. 43-45, *ONK. ---- Naghash Hovnathan ashoughe yev Hovnathan Hovnathanian nigaritche. [The Armenian Troubadour Naghash Hovnathan and a complete collection of his works; illustrated by pictures drawn by his grandson Hovnathan Hovnathanian.] Paris, 1910. 128 p., 1 l., 26 pl. 8 deg.. *ONP ---- Poemes. Aurore. La caravane des heures. Angoisse. Visions. Dans la nuit. Sur la colline. Traduction francaise. Preface de Pierre Quillard. Paris: Societe du Mercure de France, 1908. xii, 263 p. 12 deg.. *ONP ---- Poemes armeniens, anciens et modernes. Traduits par Archag Tchobanian et precedes d'une etude de Gabriel Mourey sur la poesie et l'art armeniens. Paris: A. Charles, 1902. 104 p. 12 deg.. *ONP Buss, Kate. Archag Tchobanian. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 40-42.) *ONK Marshall, Annie C. Arshag Tchobanian. A biographical sketch. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 298-301.) †*ONK Torossian, Aram. Armenian poetry. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 1. p. 24-39.) *ONK Tourian, Bedros. Complaints. Repentance. [Translated from the Armenian by Alice Stone Blackwell.] (Armenia. Boston, 1907. 4 deg.. v. 3, no. 9, p. 38-42.) †*ONK ---- Little lake. From the Armenian. [Translated by] Alice Stone Blackwell. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 8, p. 19.) †*ONK ---- Wishes for Armenia. [Translated by Alice Stone Blackwell.] (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 141-142.) †*ONK Reprinted in New Armenia, v. 8, p. 363, †*ONK. Tcheraz, Minas. Bedros Tourian. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9. p. 154-156.) †*ONK ---- Vie et poesies de Bedros Tourian. (Museon. Louvain, 1894. 8 deg.. v. 13, p. 357-366.) ZAA Tsutsag hishadagarani Movsisi Zohrabiants artsakhetsvo. [A collection of Armenian poetry.] Part 1. Moscow, 1870. 106 p. 8 deg.. *ONP Yarjanian-Siamanto, Atom. Song of the knight. From the Armenian of Siamanto. Rendered into English verse by Alice Stone Blackwell. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4 deg.. v. 5, p. 71-75.) †*ONK ---- The starving. [Translated by Alice Stone Blackwell.] (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 449-452.) *ONK Blackwell, Alice Stone. An Armenian poet: Siamanto. (Poet lore. Boston, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 28, p. 231-241.) *DA Torossian, Aram. Atom Yarjanian-Siamanto. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 438-448.) *ONK Yeran, Edward Arakel. Zhoghovrtahin yerkaran. [Popular songs.] Boston, n. d. 748 p., 10 l. 8 deg.. *ONP Yergat, Tigran. Poete mourant. The dying poet. Translated by Alice Stone Blackwell. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 54-55.) †*ONK Zohrabian, John. See Nerses the Graceful, patriarch of Armenia. FICTION AND DRAMA Aharonian, Avedis. Armenische Erzaehlungen, von Awetis Aharonean. Uebersetzt von Agnes Finck-Gjandschezian. Leipzig: P. Reclam, jun. [1909.] 106 p. 24 deg.. (Universal-Bibliothek. Nr. 5107.) *ONP ---- Guteton da lakto. Armena rakonto de A. Agaronjan tradukis Georgo Davidov. Budapest: Nagy Sandor Koenyvnyomdajabol [1907]. 10 p. 12 deg.. (Esperanta universala biblioteko. Armena serio 2, no. 3.) RAX p.v.1 ---- Honor, from the Armenian of Avedis Aharonian translated by Arshag Mahdesian. (Outlook. New York, 1915. 8 deg.. v. 111, p. 357-359.) *DA ---- Materi; razskazy. Avtorizovannyi perevol s armianskago Vardgesa, s predisloviem Kriia [Aleksieevicha] Veselovokago. [Tales.] Moscow: V. Antik & Co. [19--?] 77(1) p. 24 deg.. (Universal'naia Biblioteka. No. 712.) *QB p.v.96 ---- Vers la liberte. L'abime. Traduit de l'armenien par M. Chamlian et E. S. Altiar. Preface de A. F. Herold. Paris: E. Leroux, 1912. xix, 219 p., 2 l. 12 deg.. (Petite bibliotheque armenienne. v. 4.) *ONK Ajcatur. Armena fabelo. Kollektis Georgo Davidov. Budapest: Neuwald I. Utodai Koenyvnyomdajabol [1908]. 14 p. 16 deg.. (Esperanta universala biblioteko. Armena serio 3, no. 9.) RAX p.v.1 Altiar, Elias Sarkis. See Aharonian, Avedis. Antreassian, Khorene M. See Raffi. Apellian, Aleksandir. Boedi yrazi. [The poet's dream. A modern Armenian drama in one act.] Tiflis, 1909. 28 p. 12 deg.. *ONP Arakelian, Hambartzoum. Contes et nouvelles; traduit de l'armenien oriental par Aram Eknayan. Preface de Frederic Macler. Paris: E. Leroux, 1916. xxv, 251 p., 1 l., 1 port. 12 deg.. (Petite bibliotheque armenienne. v. 7.) *ONK Armenian literature; comprising poetry, drama, folk-lore, and classic traditions; translated into English for the first time; with a special introduction by Robert Arnot. London: Colonial Press [cop. 1901]. viii p., 3 l., 3-142 p., 1 fac. rev. ed. 8 deg.. *OCY Contents: Proverbs and folk-lore; translated by F. B. Collins. The vacant yard; translated by F. B. Collins. Armenian poems; metrical version, by R. Arnot. David of Sassun, national epos of Armenia; translated by F. B. Collins. The ruined family, by G. Sundukianz; translated by F. B. Collins. ---- New York: Colonial Press [cop. 1901]. 1 p.l., viii p., 3 l., 3-142 p., 1 fac., 1 pl. rev. ed. 8 deg.. (The world's great classics.) *OCY Bound with: Babylonian and Assyrian literature. Armenische Bibliothek. Hrsg. von Abgar Joannissiany. Bd. 1-9. Leipzig: Wilhelm Friedrich [1886-87]. 12 deg.. *ONK Contents: Bd. 1. R. Patkanian, Drei Erzaehlungen. Bd. 2. A. Leist, Litterarische Skizzen. Bd. 3. Raffi, Bilder aus Persien und Tuerkisch-Armenien. Bd. 4. G. A. Khalathianz, Maerchen und Sagen. Bd. 5-6. P. Proschianz, Sako. Bd. 7. K. Sundukianz, Die ruinirte Familie. Bd. 8-9. D. Sabrijian, Zwei Jahre in Abyssinien. Arnot, Robert. See Armenian literature. Baronian, Hagop H. Maitre Balthasar; comedie en trois actes. Introduction et traduction par J. M. Silnitzky. Paris: E. Leroux, 1913. xlv, 196 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. (Petite bibliotheque armenienne. v. 6.) *ONK Bibliography, p. vi-vii. Barrileah, A. H. Ara keghetsig badmagan vibasanoutiun. [Ara the pretty. An historical romance.] Venice, 1876. 487 p., 1 l., 1 pl. 16 deg.. *ONP Berberian, M. See Veselovski, Y., and M. Berberian, editors. Calfa, Corene. Arschag II. Tragedie armenienne. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1863. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 15, p. 185-202, 292-306; tome 16, p. 27-40, 99-112, 147-158.) *OAA Chalatianz, Grikor. See Khalathianz, Grigori Abramovich. Chamlian, Missak. See Aharonian, Avedis. Chirvanzade, pseud. of Alexandre Movissian. La possedee; traduit de l'armenien par A. Tchobanian. Preface de Frederic Macler. Paris: E. Leroux, 1910. xiii, 188 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. (Petite bibliotheque armenienne. [v. 1.]) *ONK Colangian, Edouard. See Zartarian, Roupen. Collins, F. B., translator. The vacant yard. An Armenian story. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 380-384; v. 7. p. 30-32, 59-64.) †*ONK ---- See also Armenian literature; also Sundukianz, Kapriel. Davidov, Georg. See Aharonian, Avedis; also Ajcatur. Eknayan, Aram. See Arakelian, Hambartzoum. Essayan, Grigor. See Zartarian, Roupen. Gjandschezian, Agnes Finck. See Aharonian, Avedis. Hagopian, Hagop Melik. See Raffi. Haroutiunian, Hovhannes. "Vor megoun yedeven." ["Whom shall we follow after?" A drama in five acts.] Boston, 1912. 139 p. 8 deg.. *ONP Joannissiany, Abgar, editor. See Armenische Bibliothek. Khalathianz, Grigori Abramovich. Maerchen und Sagen. Mit einer Einleitung von Grikor Chalatianz. Leipzig: Wilhelm Friedrich [1887]. xxxvii p., 1 l., 147 p. 12 deg.. (Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 4.) *ONK Lalajan, Johannes, translator. See Proschianz, Pertsch. Leist, Arthur, translator. See Patkanian, Raphael. Macler, Frederic, translator. Contes armeniens. Traduits de l'armenien moderne par F. Macler. Paris: E. Leroux, 1905. 2 p.l., 194 p. 16 deg.. (Collection de contes et chansons populaires. tome 29.) ZBG ---- Contes et legendes de l'Armenie; traduits et recueillis par F. Macler. Preface de R. Basset. Paris: E. Leroux, 1911. xv, 196 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. (Petite bibliotheque armenienne. v. 3.) *ONK ---- See also Petite bibliotheque armenienne. Mahdesian, Arshag. See Aharonian, Avedis. Mangouni, N. Hatsi Hamar. [Armenian stories.] Boston, 1914. 222 p. 8 deg.. *ONP Marr, N. Sbornik pritch Vardana, materialy dlia istorii sredneviekovoi Armianskoi literatury. St. Petersburg: Akademiya Nauk, 1899. 3 v. in 2. 4 deg.. *QCT Medieval Armenian literature. Reviewed by F. C. Conybeare in Folk-lore, v. 10, p. 462-475, ZBA. Melik, Alexander. Khordagwadz yerginkner. [An historical novel.] Boston: Hairenik Press, 1917. 4 p.l., 7-352 p. 8 deg.. *ONP Mourier, J., translator. Contes et legendes du Caucase traduits par J. Mourier. Paris: Maisonneuve & C. Leclerc, 1888. 2 p.l., 112 p., 1 l. 16 deg.. ZBG p.v.3 Contes georgiens. Contes mingreliens. Contes armeniens. Movissian, Alexandre. See Chirvanzade, pseud. of Alexandre Movissian. Patkanian, Raphael. Drei Erzaehlungen. Aus dem Armenischen uebertragen von Arthur Leist. Leipzig: Wilhelm Friedrich [1886]. iv, 164 p. 12 deg.. (Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 1.) *ONK Leist, Arthur. Raphael Patkanian. (In his: Litterarische Skizzen. Leipzig [1886]. 12 deg.. p. 19-40.) *ONK Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 2. Petite bibliotheque armenienne. Publiee sous la direction de F. Macler. v. 1-7. Paris: E. Leroux, 1910-16. 12 deg.. *ONK Contents: v. 1. Chirvanzade, La possedee. v. 2. M. Tcheraz, Nouvelles orientales. v. 3. F. Macler, Contes et legendes de l'Armenie. v. 4. A. Aharonian, Vers la liberte. v. 5. R. Zartarian, Clarte nocturne. v. 6. H. H. Baronian, Maitre Balthasar. v. 7. H. Arakelian, Contes et nouvelles. Proschianz, Pertsch. Sako. Roman in zwei Baenden. Aus dem Armenischen uebersetzt von Johannes Lalajan. Leipzig: W. Friedrich [1886]. 2 v. in 1. 12 deg.. (Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 5-6.) *ONK Raffi. Bilder aus Persien und Tuerkisch-Armenien. Aus dem Armenischen uebersetzt von Leo Rubenli. Leipzig: Wilhelm Friedrich [1887]. 1 p.l., 198 p. 12 deg.. (Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 3.) *ONK ---- Jelaleddin. A picture of his invasion. From the Armenian of Raffi. [Translated by Khorene M. Antreassian.] (Armenia. Boston, 1906-07. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 9, p. 16-28; no. 10, p. 24-34; no. 11, p. 35-40; no. 12. p. 29-33; v. 3, no. 1, p. 19-29; no. 2, p. 28-33; no. 3, p. 41-48.) †*ONK ---- Dzhalaleddin. Perevod s armianskago N. Bataturovoi. S predisloviem Kriia Veselovskago. Moscow: V. Antik & Co. [19--?] 74 p. 24 deg.. (Universal'naia Biblioteka. No. 706.) *QB p.v.96 Jelaleddin. Translated from the Armenian. ---- Khent. [A romance.] Vienna, 1905. 2 p.l., 527 p., 1 pl. 8 deg.. *ONP ---- Schoen-Vartig ("Geghetzig Vartig"). Eine Novelle Raffis. Deutsch von Dr. H. Trg. Schorn. (Geist des Ostens. Muenchen, 1914. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1, p. 745-757.) *OAA Boyajian, Zabelle C. Raffi: the Armenian national writer. (Contemporary review. New York, 1916. 8 deg.. v. 110, p. 222-228.) *DA Burchardi, Gustav. Raffi, der Schoepfer der neuarmenischen Literatur. (Geist des Ostens. Muenchen, 1914. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 1, p. 167-169.) *OAA Raffi commemoration. Armenia's greatest writer, reformer and champion. (Ararat. London, 1913. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 35-40.) *ONK Rubenli, Leo. See Raffi; also Sundukianz, Kapriel. Rushdooni. The sixth-and-a-half cousin's inheritance. From the Armenian of Rushdooni. Translated and arranged by A. Timourian. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4 deg.. v. 5, p. 86-91.) †*ONK Saint-Martin, Jean Antoine. Analyse d'une tragedie armenienne; representee a Leopol, le 9 avril 1668. [Sainte Ripsime.] (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1823. 8 deg.. serie 1, v. 2, p. 22-39.) *OAA Schorn, H. Trg. See Raffi. Shishmanian, Hovsep. Toros Livoni. [Armenian stories.] Boston, 1917. 305 p. 8 deg.. *ONP Silnitzky, J. M. See Baronian, Hagop H. Sumpad Purad. Pande pand. [From prison to prison. A romance.] Part 1-5. Constantinople, 1911. 1048 p., 4 pl. 8 deg.. *ONP Sundukianz, Kapriel. The ruined family. By Gabriel Sundukianz. Translated by F. B. Collins. (In: Armenian literature. London [cop. 1901]. 8 deg.. p. 81-142.) *OCY ---- The ruined family. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 8, p. 11-14, no. 9, p. 7-11, no. 10, p. 17-19, no. 11. p. 13-15, no. 12, p. 26-28; v. 5, no. 1, p. 27-32, no. 2. p. 59-64.) †*ONK ---- Die ruinirte Familie. Lustspiel in drei Aufzuegen, aus dem Armenischen von Leo Rubenli. Leipzig: W. Friedrich [1886]. 1 p.l., 118 p. 12 deg.. (Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 7.) *ONK Leist, Arthur. Gabriel Sundukianz. (In his: Litterarische Skizzen. Leipzig [1886]. 12 deg.. p. 123-142.) *ONK Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 2. Tcheraz, Minas. Nouvelles orientales; preface de Frederic Macler. Paris: E. Leroux, 1911. xviii, 133 p., 2 l. 12 deg.. (Petite bibliotheque armenienne. [v. 2.]) *ONK ---- L'Orient inedit; legendes et traditions armeniennes, grecques et turques, recueillies et traduites. Paris: E. Leroux, 1912. 3 p.l., 4-328 p. 16 deg.. (Collection de contes et chansons populaires. tome 39.) ZBG Marshall, Annie C. Minas Tcheraz. A biographical sketch. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 240-243.) †*ONK Tchobanian, Archag. La vie et le reve; poemes en prose, contes, fantaisies. Lettre-preface de Emile Verhaeren. Paris: Societe du Mercure de France, 1913. vii p., 1 l., 218 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. *ONP ---- See also Chirvanzade, pseud. of Alexandre Movissian; also Zartarian, Roupen. Timourian, A. See Rushdooni. Tlgadintsi. See Haroutiunian, Hovhannes. Veselovski, Y., and M. Berberian, editors. Armianskie belletristy sbornik. Moscow: N. Kushnerov, 1893. 518 p. 8 deg.. *QDA A collection of Armenian fiction. Wlislocki, Heinrich von. Maerchen und Sagen der Bukowinaer und Siebenbuerger Armenier. Aus eigenen und fremden Sammlungen uebersetzt von Dr. Heinrich von Wlislocki. Hamburg: Verlagsanstalt und Druckerei Actien-Gesellschaft, 1891. viii, 188 p. 8 deg.. ZBIM Zartarian, Roupen. Clarte nocturne, traduit de l'armenien par Archag Tchobanian, Edouard Colangian, et Grigor Essayan; preface de Gaston Bonet-Maury. Paris: E. Leroux, 1913. xx, 170 p., 2 l. 16 deg.. (Petite bibliotheque armenienne. v. 5.) *ONK OTHER LITERATURE Adanson, Karl Ludwig. See Injijian, Ghougas. Aharonian, Avedis. Mother Armenia, forgive me. Translated by Missak Turpanjian. (New Armenia. New York, 1918. f deg.. v. 10, p. 46-47.) †*ONK Alelouia Yerousaghem. [A description of Jerusalem by a pilgrim.] Constantinople, 1903. 158 p., 1 l. illus. 12 deg.. *ONP Alishanian, Gheuont. Deux descriptions armeniennes des lieux saints de Palestine. (Societe de l'Orient latin. Archives de l'Orient latin. Paris, 1884. 8 deg.. tome 2, Documents, p. 394-403.) *OBA Assises d'Antioche reproduces en francais et publiees au sixieme centenaire de la mort de Sempad le connetable, leur ancien traducteur armenien, dediees a l'Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres de France par la Societe mekhithariste de Saint-Lazare. Venise: Imprimerie armenienne medaillee, 1876. xxiii, 93 p. 4 deg.. †*ONP Augustin Badjetsi. Itineraire du tres-reverend frere Augustin Badjetsi, eveque armenien de Nakhidchevan, de l'ordre des Freres-Precheurs, a travers l'Europe; ecrit, en langue armenienne, de sa propre main, ainsi que l'a reconnu et atteste le reverend frere Antoine Najari, son parent et son neveu, Apracounetsi, envoye du roi de Perse au roi tres-chretien.... Traduit sur le manuscrit armenien ... par M. Brosset jeune. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1837. 8 deg.. serie 3, v. 3, p. 209-245, 401-421.) *OAA Avakian, Hovhannes, and Bedros Hovnanian, editors. Koharnir Hai kraganoutian. [Gems of Armenian literature.] Boston: Hairenik Press, 1916. 366 p., 3 l. 12 deg.. *ONP Aznavor, Cherubino. See Injijian, Ghougas. Basil. Oraison funebre de Baudouin, comte de Marasch et de Kecoun. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 203-222.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Bayan, G. Armenian proverbs and sayings translated into English by G. Bayan. Venice: Academy of S. Lazarus, 1889. 58 p. 16 deg.. *ONK p.v.1 Bittner, Maximilian. Der vom Himmel gefallene Brief Christi in seinen morgenlaendischen Versionen und Rezensionen. 240 p., 8 pl. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Denkschriften: Philosophisch-historische Klasse. Wien, 1906. 4 deg.. Bd. 51, Abh. 1.) *EF Brosset, Marie Felicite. Extrait du manuscrit armenien no. 114 de la Bibliotheque royale, relatif au calendrier georgien, traduit par Brosset. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1832. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 10, p. 526-532.) *OAA ---- Sur deux redactions armeniennes, en vers et en prose, de la legende des saints Baralam = Varlaam et Ioasaph = Iosaphat. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1878. f deg.. tome 24, col. 561-567.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1881. tome 8, p. 535-543, *OAA. ---- See also Augustin Badjetsi. Carriere, Auguste. Un version armenienne de l'histoire d'Asseneth. (Ecole des langues orientales vivantes. Publications. Paris, 1886. 4 deg.. serie 2, v. 19, p. 471-511.) *OAF Chalatianz, Bagrat. See Khalathianz, Bagrat. Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis. The Barlaam and Josaphat legend in the ancient Georgian and Armenian literatures. (Folk-lore. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 7, p. 101-142.) ZBA ---- See also The Key of truth. Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis, and others. The story of Ahikar from the Syriac, Arabic, Armenian, Ethiopic, Greek and Slavonic versions by F. C. Conybeare, J. Rendel Harris, and Agnes Smith Lewis. London: C. J. Clay & Sons, 1898. lxxxviii, 162 p., 1 l., 72 p. 8 deg.. *OAT Armenian text, p. 125-162. Translation of the Armenian text, p. 24-55. Damadian, M. Ramgavaroutiun. [Democracy.] Alexandria, 1910. 158 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. *ONP Dashian, Hagopos, vartabed. Vartabedutune arakelotz anvaveragan ganonatz madiane. Tought hagopa ar gotrados ev ganonk tattei. [The canons of the Apostles in Old Armenian.] Vienna, 1896. 9 p., 1 l., 442 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONN ---- Zur Abgar-Sage. (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1890. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 17-34, 144-160, 177-198.) *OAA Dulaurier, Edouard. Cosmogonie des Perses d'apres Eznig, auteur armenien du Ve siecle. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1857. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 5, p. 253-262.) *OAA Eznig. See Dulaurier, Edouard; also Wickering, Armand de. Gjandschezian, Agnes Finck. See Photios. Gjandschezian, Esnik. See Gregory Magistros; also Photios. Gregory of Armenia, called Illuminator. Die Akten Gregors von Armenien neu hrsg. von P. de Lagarde. (Koenigliche Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu Goettingen. Abhandlungen. Goettingen, 1889. 4 deg.. Bd. 35, p. 89-120.) *EE Lagarde, Paul Anton de. Vita Gregorii Armeni. (In his: Onomastica sacra. Gottingae, 1887. 8 deg.. p. 1-24.) *YIP Gregory Magistros. Ein Brief des Gregor Magistros an den Emir Ibrahim. Hrsg. von Esnik Gjandschezian. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1904. 8 deg.. Bd. 2, p. 234-263.) *ONL ---- Ein Brief des Gregor Magistros an den Patriarchen Petros. Hrsg. von Esnik Gjandschezian. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1904. 8 deg.. Bd. 2, p. 75-80.) *ONL Khalathianz, Grigori Abramovich. Fragmente iranischer Sagen bei Grigor Magistros. (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 10, p. 217-224.) *OAA Langlois, Victor. Memoire sur la vie et les ecrits du prince Gregoire Magistros, duc de la Mesopotamie, auteur armenien du XI siecle. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1869. 8 deg.. serie 6, v. 13, p. 5-64.) *OAA Gregory of Nazianzen. (Nonnos.) Die Scholien zu fuenf Reden des Gregor von Nazianz. Hrsg. von Agop Manandian. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 1, p. 220-330.) *ONL Harris, James Rendel. See Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis, and others. Histoire de Pharmani Asman. Traduite de l'armenien sur le manuscrit conserve a la Bibliotheque nationale de Paris, par Frederic Macler. (Societe des traditions populaires. Revue des traditions populaires. Paris, 1906. 8 deg.. v. 21, p. 417-440, 481-500.) ZBA Hovnanian, Bedros. See Avakian, Hovhannes, and Bedros Hovnanian, editors. Injijian, Ghougas. Description du Bosphore ... traduite de l'armenien en francais par F. Martin. Paris: J. B. Sajou, 1813. 134 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONP ---- Nachrichten ueber den Thrazischen Bosporus, oder die Strasse von Constantinopel vom Dr. Ingigian; aus dem Armenischen uebersetzt und von K. L. Adanson aus dem Franzoesischen uebersetzt.... Weimar: Verlag des Landes-Industrie-Comptoirs, 1814. viii, 118 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. (In: M. C. Sprengel, Bibliothek der neuesten und wichtigsten Reisebeschreibungen. Bd. 50.) KBD ---- Villeggiature de' Bizantini sul Bosforo tracio opera del P. Luca Ingigi tradotta dal P. Cherubino Aznavor. Venezia: Tipografia di S. Lazzaro, 1831. xxiii, 330 p., 1 l., 1 map, 1 pl. 16 deg.. GIO Joannissiany, Abgar. Armenische Sprichwoerter. (Das Ausland. Augsburg, 1871. f deg.. Jahrg. 44, p. 403-405.) †KAA ---- Sprichwoerter. (In: G. A. Khalathianz, Maerchen und Sagen. Leipzig [1887]. 12 deg.. p. 133-147.) *ONK Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 4. Kalemkiar, Gr. Die siebente Vision Daniels. (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1892. 8 deg.. v. 6, p. 109-136, 227-240.) *OAA The Key of truth: a manual of the Paulician church of Armenia. The Armenian text, edited and translated with illustrative documents and introduction by Fred. C. Conybeare. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1898. cxcvi, 201 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. ZFE Khalathianz, Bagrat. Die armenische Heldensage. (Verein fuer Volkskunde. Zeitschrift. Berlin, 1902. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 12, p. 138-144, 264-271, 391-402.) YAA Lagarde, Paul Anton de. See Gregory of Armenia, called Illuminator. Leist, Arthur. Litterarische Skizzen. Leipzig: Wilhelm Friedrich [1886]. 1 p.l., 174 p. 12 deg.. (Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 2.) *ONK Contents: Ein Volkssaenger. Raphael Patkanian. Pater Leo Alischan. Mkrtitsch Beschiktaschlian. Abowian. Die Kongregation der Mechitaristen. Erzbischof Gabriel Aiwasowski. Gabriel Sundukianz. Das armenische Zeitungswesen. Ein Vater seines Volkes. Lewis, Agnes Smith. See Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis. and others. Macler, Frederic. Un document armenien sur l'assassinat de Mahomet par une Juive. (Melanges Hartwig Derenbourg, 1844-1908. Paris, 1909. 4 deg.. p. 287-295.) *OAC ---- Notre-Dame de Bitlis. Texte armenien traduit et annote par Frederic Macler. 7 pl. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1916. 8 deg.. serie 11, tome 6, p. 357-444.) *OAA ---- See also Histoire de Pharmani Asman; also Mkhithar Gosh. Manandian, Agop. See Gregory of Nazianzen. Martin, Francois. See Injijian, Ghougas. Mkhithar Gosh. Choix de fables armeniennes attribuees a Mkhithar Goch, traduites par F. Macler. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1902. 8 deg.. serie 9, v. 19, p. 457-487.) *OAA Brosset, Marie Felicite. Rapport de M. Brosset sur un manuscrit armenien. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin de la classe historico-philologique. St. Petersbourg, 1849. f deg.. tome 6, col. 380-382.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1852. tome 1, p. 150-152, *OAA. Parechanian, Hagop K. Tirahauad khilkin hauadatsial ullalou jampan. [The infidel spirit.] Boston, 1917. 24 p. 12 deg.. *ONP Photios. Der Brief des Photios an Aschot und dessen Antwort. Uebersetzt von Agnes Finck und Esnik Gjandschezian. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1904. 8 deg.. Bd. 2, p. 1-17.) *ONL Prud'homme, Evariste. See Vartan the Great. Sabrijian, Dimoteos. Deux ans de sejour en Abyssinie; ou, Vie morale, politique et religieuse des Abyssiniens par le R. P. Dimotheos, legat de ... le patriarche armenien aupres de Theodore roi d'Abyssinie. Traduit par ordre de ... Isaie, patriarche armenien de Jerusalem. Livre 1-2. Jerusalem: Typographie armenienne du couvent de Saint-Jacques, 1871. 2 v. in 1. 8 deg.. BLM ---- Zwei Jahre in Abyssinien oder Schilderung der Sitten und des staatlichen und religioesen Lebens der Abyssinier von Sr. Hochw. Pater Timotheus, Legat Sr. Eminenz des armenischen Patriarchen bei Koenig Theodor von Abyssinien. Teil 1-2. Leipzig: Wilhelm Friedrich, n. d. 12 deg.. (Armenische Bibliothek. Bd. 8-9.) *ONK Saint-Martin, Jean Antoine. See Vartan the Great. Schmid, Johann Michael, translator. Geschichte des Apostels Thaddaeus und der Jungfrau Sanducht. Aus dem Altarmenischen uebersetzt. (Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie. Marburg, 1903. 8 deg.. Bd. 1, p. 67-73.) *ONL Sempad, constable of Armenia. See Assises d'Antioche. Srapian, Moses, translator. Das Martyrium des hl. Pionius. Aus dem Altarmenischen uebersetzt von Pater Moses Srapian. (Wiener Zeitschrift fuer die Kunde des Morgenlandes. Wien, 1914. 8 deg.. Bd. 28, p. 376-405.) *OAA Terzagian, Hagop K. Parlamentagan ganonner ev zhoghovavaroutiun. [Parliamentary rules.] Boston, 1912. 84 p., 2 l. 12 deg.. *ONP Teza, Emilio. Il libro dei sette savi nella letteratura armena. (Reale istituto veneto. Atti. Venezia, 1905. 8 deg.. tomo 65, parte 2, p. 383-397.) *ER Armenian text, 6 pages. Turpanjian, Missak. See Aharonian, Avedis. Vark nahabedats ev markareits. [Bible stories in Armenian.] Smyrna, 1838. 4 p.l., 292 p. 12 deg.. *ONO Vartan the Great. Choix de fables de Vartan en armenien et en francais. [Edited and translated by J. A. Saint-Martin.] Ouvrage publie par la Societe asiatique de Paris. Paris: Dondey-Dupre pere et fils, 1825. xii, 96 p. 8 deg.. *ONP ---- Extraits du livre intitule Solutions de passages de l'Ecriture Sainte, ecrites a la demande de Hethoum I, roi d'Armenie par le vardapet Vardan; traduits de l'armenien vulgaire sur le texte original par M. Evariste Prud'homme. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1867. 8 deg.. serie 6, v. 9, p. 147-204.) *OAA Varteresian, Hapet. Mer poghoknern ou tashnagtzoutean tirku anonts hanteb. [Our protests and the position that the Tashnagtzoutean has taken towards them.] Boston, 1911. 152 p., 1 pl. 8 deg.. *ONP Vetter, Paul. Das Buch Tobias und die Achikar-Sage. (Theologische Quartalschrift. Tuebingen, 1904-05. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 86, p. 321-364, 512-539; Jahrg. 87, p. 321-370, 497-546.) ZEA Wickering, Armand de. Eznig de Gog'ph, eveque de Pakrevant, auteur armenien du cinquieme siecle et son traducteur francais. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1856. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 3, p. 207-216.) *OAA Zavak. Armenian proverbs. (Ararat. London, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 424-426, 466-472.) *ONK TRANSLATIONS FROM EUROPEAN LANGUAGES Alishanian, Gheuont. See American sacred songs. American sacred songs. Translated into the Armenian language [by Father Leo Alishan]. St. Lazarus--Venice, 1874. 85 p. 16 deg.. *ONP Aristotle. See Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis. Aucher, John Baptiste. See Ephraim the Syrian. Aukerian, Haroutiun. See Milton, John. Aukerian, Megerdich. See Ephraim the Syrian. Avidaranian, H., translator. Jarakaitk arevelian. [Rays from the Orient. A book useful for every class of men. Translated from the Sanskrit.] Part 1. Shumla, Bulgaria, 1904. 8 deg.. *ONP Bagratouni, Arsen Gomidas. See Homer; also Horace; also Virgil. Bunyan, John. Krisdianosin ou Krisdinein jamportoutiuni. [Pilgrim's progress; translated into Armenian.] Part 1-2. Smyrna, 1843. 12 p., 1 l., 444 p., 1 l., 353 p., 17 pl. 12 deg.. *NEH ---- ---- New York, 1858. 532 p., 9 pl. 16 deg.. *NEH Calfa, Ambroise. See Fenelon, Francois de Salignac de la Mothe. Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis. A collation with the ancient Armenian versions of the Greek text of Aristotle's Categories, De Interpretatione, De Mundo, De Virtutibus et Vitiis and of Porphyry's Introduction. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1892. 2 p.l., xxxviii p., 1 l., 184 p., 1 fac. 8 deg.. (Anecdota Oxoniensia. Classical series. v. 1, part 6.) YAEM ---- A collation of the old Armenian version of Plato's laws, book IV-VI. (American journal of philology. Baltimore, 1893-94. 8 deg.. v. 14, p. 335-349; v. 15, p. 31-50.) RAA ---- On the ancient Armenian version of Plato. (American journal of philology. Baltimore, 1891. 8 deg.. v. 12, p. 193-210.) RAA ---- On the old Armenian version of Plato's Apology. (American journal of philology. Baltimore, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 16, p. 300-325.) RAA ---- On the old Armenian version of Plato's laws. (American journal of philology. Baltimore, 1891. 8 deg.. v. 12, p. 399-413.) RAA Paton, W. R. Critical notes on Plato's laws, IV-VI. (American journal of philology. Baltimore, 1894. 8 deg.. v. 15, p. 443-453.) RAA Dante Alighieri. Asdouadzahin gadagirkoutiun. Divina commedia. II. Purgatorio tradotto in prosa dal P. Arsenio Gazikian. Venezia, 1905. 4 p.l., 327 p. 12 deg.. *ONP Dashian, Hagopos. See Secundus, the sophist of Athens. Dirohean, Atanas V. See Georgius, Pisida. Emerson, Frederick. Mdavor ev kravor touapanoutiun. [An arithmetic compiled from Emerson's North American arithmetic by C. Hamlin.] Constantinople, 1848. 29, 280 p. 8 deg.. *ONPA Ephraim the Syrian. Srpouin Yepremi. [The writings of Saint Ephraim translated into Armenian.] Venice, 1836. 4 v. in 3. 8 deg.. *ONP ---- Evangelii concordantis expositio facta a Sancto Ephraemo doctore Syro. In Latinum translata a ... Ioanne Baptista Aucher, Mechitarista, cujus versionem emendavit, adnotationibus illustravit et edidit Georgius Moesinger. Venetiis: Libraria Mechitaristarum in Monasterio S. Lazari, 1876. 2 p.l., xii, 292 p. 8 deg.. *ODM Erker ou yeghanagner. [A hymn-book with music for the use of Sunday schools.] Constantinople, 1860. 64 p. 8 deg.. *ONP Fenelon, Francois de Salignac de la Mothe. Les aventures de Telemaque de Fenelon traduction armenienne par Ambroise Calfa. Paris, 1860. 6 p.l., 512. 7 p., 22 pl. 8 deg.. *ONP Funduklian, K. See Shakespeare, William. Gallaudet, Thomas H. Abashkharatsvits. [A book on repentance. Translated from English into Armenian.] Smyrna, 1839. 8, 280 p. 24 deg.. *ONP Gazikian, Arsen Ghazaros. See Dante Alighieri; also Tasso, Torquato; also Virgil. Georgius, Pisida. Vetsoreahk Keorkah Bisiteah. [Hexameron translated into Armenian by Atanas V. Dirohean.] Venice, 1900. 191 p. 8 deg.. *ONP Greek and Armenian texts. Hamlin, C. See Emerson, Frederick. Harnack, Adolf. See Irenaeus, bishop of Lyons. Hauff, Wilhelm. Badouoh Yediuen gam Likhtunshtain. ["Lichtenstein" translated from German into Armenian by Vahan Mesrob.] Boston, n. d. 1 p.l., 11, 374 p., 2 l., 15 pl. 8 deg.. *ONP Homer. Iliagan. [The Iliad translated into Armenian verse by Arsen Gomidas Bagratouni.] Venedig, 1864. 5 p.l., 454 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. *ONP Horace. Arvesd kertoghagan. [Quintus Horatius Flaccus' Ars poetica; translated into pleasing metre with explanatory notes by Arsen Gomidas Bagratouni.] Venice, 1847. 47 p., 3 l. 4 deg.. †*ONP Bound with: Virgil. Mshagagank. Venice, 1847. 4 deg.. Hugo, Victor. Innsoun yerek. [Ninety-three, translated from French into Armenian by Avedis Kouyoumjian.] Boston, 1910. 3 p.l., 530 p., 3 l., 1 port. 8 deg.. *ONP Ingersoll, Robert Green. Inch e gronu? [What is religion? Translated from English into Armenian by Liumen.] Boston, 1910. 1 p.l., 7-34 p. 8 deg.. *ONP International Bible Students Association. [Scenario of the photo-drama of creation translated into Armenian under the title Taderangark sdeghdzakordzoutian.] Brooklyn: International Bible Students Association, 1914. 96, 96 p. nar. 8 deg.. *ONN Paged in duplicate. Irenaeus, bishop of Lyons. Armenische Irenaeusfragmente mit deutscher Uebersetzung nach Dr. W. Luedtke zum Teil erstmalig hrsg. und untersucht von Hermann Jordan. Leipzig: J. C. Hinrichs, 1913. viii p., 1 l., 222 p. 8 deg.. (Texte und Untersuchungen zur Geschichte der altchristlichen Literatur. Reihe 3, Bd. 6, Heft 3.) ZE ---- Des Heiligen Irenaeus Schrift zum Erweise der apostolischen Verkuendigung ... In armenischer Version entdeckt, hrsg., und ins Deutsche uebersetzt von ... Karapet Ter-Mekerttschian und Erwand Ter-Minassiantz. Mit einem Nachwort und Anmerkungen von Adolf Harnack. Leipzig: J. C. Hinrichs, 1907. viii, 69, 68 p. 8 deg.. (Texte und Untersuchungen zur Geschichte der altchristlichen Literatur. Reihe 3, Bd. 1, Heft 1.) ZE Jordan, Hermann. See Irenaeus, bishop of Lyons. Koran. Mouhammed. Kouran. [The Koran translated into Armenian by Hagop Kourbetian.] Varna: Iravounk, 1912. 14, 654 p. 8 deg.. *OGD Kourbetian, Hagop, translator. See Koran. Kouyoumjian, Avedis. See Hugo, Victor. Lerch, P. Ueber eine armenische Bearbeitung der "sieben weisen Meister." (Orient und Occident. Goettingen, 1864. 8 deg.. Bd. 2, p. 369-374.) *OAA Liumen. See Ingersoll, Robert Green. Luedtke, W. See Irenaeus, bishop of Lyons. Mesrob, Vahan. See Hauff, Wilhelm. Milton, John. Mildovni Trakhd gorouseal. [Paradise lost; translated into Armenian by Haroutiun Aukerian.] Venice, 1824. 4 p.l., 7-503 p., 1 pl. 8 deg.. *ONP Moesinger, Georg. See Ephraim the Syrian. Mueller, Friedrich. Ueber die armenische Bearbeitung der "Sieben weisen Meister." (Vienna Oriental journal. Vienna, 1890. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 213-216.) *OAA Nemesius. See Teza, Emilio; also Zanolli, Almo. Payson, Edward. Hokeshah mdadzoutiunk. [Salutary thoughts of the world and the church. Translated from English into Armenian.] Smyrna, 1844. 7, 180 p. 32 deg.. *ONO Petermann, Julius Heinrich. Ueber das Verhaeltniss der armenischen Uebersetzung der Briefe des Ignatius zu der von Herrn Cureton herausgegebenen syrischen Version derselben. (Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Jahresbericht. Leipzig, 1847. 8 deg.. p. 198-203.) *OAA Plato. See Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis. Porphyry. See Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis. Rollin, Charles. Badmoutiun Hrovmeagan. [Histoire romaine; translated into Armenian.] v. 1-6. Venice, 1816-17. 4 deg.. †*ONQ Russell, Charles Taze. [The millennial dawn; translated from English into Armenian under the title Hazaramiai arshaloisu.] v. 1. Brooklyn, N. Y.: International Bible Students' Association, 1916. 12 deg.. *ONP v. 1. The plan of the ages. Armenian title: Asdoudzo Dzrakiru. Secundus, the sophist of Athens. Das Leben und die Sentenzen des Philosophen Secundus des Schweigsamen in altarmenischer Uebersetzung von Jacobus Dashian. 56 p. (Kaiserliche Akademie der Wissenschaften. Denkschriften: Philosophisch-historische Klasse. Wien, 1896. f deg.. Bd. 44, Abhandlung 3.) *EF Shakespeare, William. Andonios ev Gleobadra. [Antony and Cleopatra; translated into Armenian by K. Funduklian (Parnak).] Paris, 1911. 19, 108 p. 8 deg.. *ONP Sue, Eugene. Taparagan Heryah. Le Juif errant [translated into Armenian]. Constantinople, 1853. 16, 524 p., 3 l., 17 pl. 8 deg.. *ONP Tasso, Torquato. Yerousaghem azadeal. [Jerusalem delivered, translated into Armenian by Arsen Ghazaros Gazikian.] Venice, 1911. 20, 628 p., 1 pl. 16 deg.. *ONP Ter-Mekerttschian, Karapet. See Irenaeus, bishop of Lyons. Ter-Minassiantz, Erwand. See Irenaeus, bishop of Lyons. Teza, Emilio. Nemesiana. Sopra alcuni luoghi della Natura dell'uomo in armeno. (Reale accademia dei Lincei. Rendiconti: Classe di scienze morale, storiche e filologiche. Roma, 1893. 8 deg.. serie 5, v. 2, p. 3-16.) *ER Thomas a Kempis. Hamahedevumin Krisdosi. [Imitatio Christi.] Amsterdam [1696]. 420 p., 5 pl. 24 deg.. *ONP ---- ---- Romae: Typis Sacrae Congreg. de Propaganda Fide, 1705. 8 p.l., 611 p., 9 l. 16 deg.. *ONP Upham, Thomas Cogswell. Darerk imatsagan pilisopayoutian. [Elements of mental philosophy translated from English into Armenian.] Smyrna, 1851. 30 p., 1 1., 524 p. 8 deg.. *ONP Vartabedoutiun krisdonagan usd Haiots. [Christian catechism translated into Armenian.] Amsterdam, 1667. 72 p. 16 deg.. *ONP p.v.1 Virgil. B. Virkileah Maroni Yeneagan. [The Aeneid, translated into Armenian by Arsen Gazikian.] Venice, 1910. 4 p.l., 573 p., 2 l., 1 pl. 12 deg.. *ONP ---- Mshagagank. [Publius Virgilius Maro's Georgica. Translated into pleasing metre, with explanatory notes, by Arsen Gomidas Bagratouni.] Venice, 1847. 32, 128 p., 2 l., 1 pl. 4 deg.. †*ONP Whiting, George Backus. Jrak hokvoh. [Light of the soul. A tract on self-examination, translated from English into Armenian.] Smyrna, 1849. 47 p. 24 deg.. *ONP p.v.1 Zanolli, Almo. Osservazioni sulla traduzione armena del "Peri Physeos anthropou" di Nemesio. (Societa asiatica italiana. Giornale. Firenze, 1906-09. 8 deg.. v. 19, p. 213-247; v. 21, p. 81-99; v. 22, p. 155-178.) *OAA ARMENIAN CHURCH Translations of the Bible are not included in this list. Armenian Church. Garkavorootun Hasaragatz Aghotitz. [Regular service-book of the Armenian Church.] Venice, 1742. 391, 33 p. 24 deg.. *ONP ---- Liturgia armena trasportata in italiano per cura del P. G. Avedichian. Seconda edizione adorna di rami. Venezia: Tipografia di S. Lazzaro, 1832. 125 p., 1 l., 8 pl. 8 deg.. *ONP ---- Liturgie de la messe armenienne traduite en francais de la version italienne par Monseigneur Lapostolest. Venise: Imprimerie des Mechitaristes de Saint Lazare, 1851. 8 p.l., 60 p., 8 pl. 8 deg.. ZHKD ---- Rituale Armenorum being the administration of the sacraments and the breviary rites of the Armenian Church together with the Greek rites of baptism and epiphany edited from the oldest mss. by F. C. Conybeare ... and the east Syrian epiphany rites translated by the Rev. A. J. Maclean. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1905. xxxv, 536 p., 1 fac. 8 deg.. ZHKD Armenians taking stock of their national church. (Missionary review of the world. New York, 1907. 8 deg.. new series, v. 20, p. 742-746.) ZKVA Arpee, Leon. The Armenian awakening; a history of the Armenian Church, 1820-1860. Chicago: University Press, 1909. xi, 235 p. 8 deg.. ZNV Asgian, G. La chiesa armena e l'arianesimo. (Bessarione. Roma, 1899-1900. 8 deg.. v. 6, p. 522-528.) *OAA ---- La s. sede e la nazione armena. (Bessarione. Roma, 1898-1904. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 330-338; v. 5, p. 1-8, 303-307, 470-488; v. 6, p. 272-294; v. 7, p. 87-91, 282-290, 507-517; v. 8, p. 64-73, 476-491; v. 9, p. 287-295; serie 2, v. 1, p. 41-49, 381-386; v. 2, p. 102-106; v. 3, p. 188-193; v. 4, p. 384-391; v. 5, p. 382-388; v. 7, p. 19-24, 152-156, 254-257.) *OAA Aukerian, Megerdich, vartabed. Liagadar vark ev vgayapanoutiun srpots. [Vitae sanctorum ecclesiae Armeniacae.] Venetiis, 1810-15. 12 v. 12 deg.. *ONO Avedikian, Gabriele. See Armenian Church. Bayan, G. See Ter Israel. Blackwell, Alice Stone. The progress in the Armenian Church. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 11, p. 7-13.) †*ONK Bore, Eugene. De l'Armenie. De l'action directe et puissante du christianisme sur la societe armenienne.... (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1836. 8 deg.. serie 3, v. 1, p. 209-238.) *OAA Brosset, Marie Felicite. Notice historique sur les couvents armeniens de Haghbat et de Sanahin. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin scientifique. St. Petersbourg, 1842. f deg.. v. 10, col. 303-336.) *QCB ---- Notice sur le couvent armenien de Ketcharhous, a Daratchitchag. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin de la classe historico-philologique. St. Petersbourg, 1855. f deg.. tome 10, col. 341-352.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1856. tome 2, p. 133-149, *OAA. ---- Sur les couvents armeniens d'Haghbat et de Sanahin. (Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Bulletin. St. Petersbourg, 1863. f deg.. tome 5, col. 215-231.) *QCB Reprinted in Imperatorskaya Akademiya Nauk. Melanges asiatiques. St. Petersbourg, 1863. tome 4, p. 603-628, *OAA. Conybeare, Frederick Cornwallis. See Armenian Church; also Sahak, patriarch. Dadian, Boghos. L'eglise d'Armenie. Declaration adressee a Mgr. Sibour, archeveque de Paris, relativement aux inculpations qui sont faites a l'eglise armenienne. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1855. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 2, p. 217-226.) *OAA The Day of peril of the Armenian Church in Russia. (Armenia. Boston, 1906. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 12, p. 37-47; v. 3, no. 1, p. 30-42.) †*ONK De Kay, Charles. The suppression of a faith. (Outlook. New York, 1904. 8 deg.. v. 77, p. 525-531.) *DA Dowling, Theodore Edward. The Armenian church, by Archdeacon Dowling.... With an introduction by the Lord Bishop of Salisbury.... London: Society for Promoting Christian Knowledge, 1910. xvi, 17-160 p., 1 fac., 5 pl., 2 ports. 12 deg.. ZNV Duchesne, Louis Marie Olivier. L'Armenie chretienne dans l'histoire ecclesiastique d'Eusebe. (In: Melanges Nicole. Recueil de memoires de philologie classique.... Geneve, 1905. 8 deg.. p. 105-109.) BTGP Dulaurier, Edouard. Histoire dogmes, traditions et liturgie de l'eglise armenienne orientale avec des notions additionnelles sur l'origine de cette liturgie, les sept sacrements, les observances, la hierarchie ecclesiastique, les vetements sacerdotaux et la forme interieure des eglises, chez les Armeniens. Paris: A. Franck, 1857. 2 p.l., vii, 9-186 p. 2. ed. 24 deg.. ZNV ---- ---- Ouvrage traduit du russe et de l'armenien par Edouard Dulaurier. Paris: A. Durand, 1859. 2 p.l., vii, 9-186 p. 3. ed. 16 deg.. ZNV Dwight, Harrison Gray Otis. Christianity in Turkey; a narrative of the Protestant Reformation in the Armenian Church. [A review of this book.] (Eclectic review. London, 1855. 8 deg.. new series, v. 9, p. 532-546.) *DA ---- See also Selim III, sultan of Turkey. Ebersolt, Jean. Les anciennes eglises d'Armenie et l'effort armenien. (La voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 812-816.) *ONK Ecclesiae Armeniacae Canones selecti. (In: Angelo Mai, Scriptorum veterum nova collectio. Romae, 1838. 4 deg.. v. 10. p. 269-316.) †NRD Epiphanius of Cyprus. Ekthesis Protoklesion Patriarchon te kai metropoliton Armenisch und Griechisch hrsg. von Franz Nikolaus Finck. Marburg: N. G. Elwert, 1902. 120 p. 12 deg.. *ONP Esteves Pereira, Francisco Maria. See Vida de S. Gregorio. Finck, Franz Nikolaus. See Epiphanius of Cyprus; also Nilus Doxapatrius. Fischer, Hans. Das Kloster des hl. Thaddaeus. (Der Christliche Orient. Westend-Berlin, 1897. 4 deg.. 1897, p. 510-513.) †*OAA Fortescue, Edward Francis Knottesford. The Armenian Church founded by St. Gregory the Illuminator. Being a sketch of the history, liturgy, doctrine, and ceremonies, of this ancient national church. With an appendix by the Rev. S. C. Malan. London: J. T. Hayes [1872]. 336 p., 11 pl. 12 deg.. ZNV Galanus, Clemens.... Conciliationis Ecclesiae Armenae cvm Romana ex ipsis Armenorvm patrvm et doctorvm testimoniis. In duas partes, historialem & controuersialem diuisae. Romae: Typis Sacrae Congregationis de Propaganda Fide, 1650-61. 3 v. f deg.. †ZNV Armenian and Latin texts. Gelzer, Heinrich. Die Anfaenge der armenischen Kirche. (Koeniglich Saechsische Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften. Berichte ueber die Verhandlungen: Philol.-hist. Classe. Leipzig, 1895. 8 deg.. Bd. 47, p. 109-174.) *EE ---- Armenien. (In: J. J. Herzog, Realencyklopaedie fuer protestantische Theologie und Kirche.... Leipzig, 1897. 3. ed. 4 deg.. Bd. 2, p. 63-92.) *R-ZEB Gregory, G. Marcar, translator. See Ormanian, Malachia. Gregory of Bysantium, metropolitan of Chios. Yearnings after unity in the East.... With remarks thereon by George Williams. London: Rivingtons, 1866. iv, 526 p. 8 deg.. (Eastern Church Association. Occasional paper, no. 3.) ZNG Hamarod zhamakirk Hahasdaneahts sa Yegeghetsuoh. [Brief breviary.] Boston, 1916. 91 p. 12 deg.. *ONP Isaacus. See Sahak, patriarch. Kent, W. H. The ancient church of Armenia. (Dublin review. London, 1904. 8 deg.. v. 135, p. 143-158.) *DA Langlois, Victor. Memoire sur les archives du Catholicosat armenien de Sis, en Cilicie. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1856. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 3, p. 177-189.) *OAA Lapostolest, F. X. See Armenian Church. Lichti, Otto. See Yeshu' bar Shushan. Maclean, Arthur John. See Armenian Church. Malan, Solomon C. See Fortescue, Edward Francis Knottesford. Memoire de la mission d'Erzeron. (In: Lettres edifiantes. Lyon, 1819. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 356-372.) KBC Missirian, G. M. The national churches of the East. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 80-85.) *ONK Reprinted from the Boston Evening Transcript, Dec. 8, 1917. Mkhithar of Dashir. Relation de la conference tenue entre le docteur Mekhithar de Daschir, envoye du catholicos Constantin I, et le legat du pape a Saint-Jean-d'Acre, en 1262. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 689-698.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Monier. Lettre du pere Monier, de la compagnie de Jesus, au pere Fleuriau, de la meme compagnie. (In: Lettres edifiantes. Lyon, 1819. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 76-169.) KBC Neale, John Mason. A history of the Holy Eastern Church. Part 1. General introduction. London: J. Masters, 1850. 2 v. 8 deg.. ZNB Nerses the Graceful, patriarch of Armenia. Preces sancti Nersetis Clajensis Armeniorum patriarchae viginti quatuor linguis editae. Venetiis: In Insula S. Lazari, 1837. 3 p.l., 434 p., 1 port. 16 deg.. ZHR ---- Preces sancti Nierses, Armeniorum patriarchae, Turcice, Graece, Latine, Italice et Gallice redditae. Venetiis: In Insula S. Lazari, 1815. 172 p. 32 deg.. *ONO Nerses of Lambron. Extraits de l'ouvrage intitule Reflexions sur les institutions de l'eglise et explication du mystere de la messe. Lettre adressee au roi Leon II. (In: Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens. Paris, 1869. f deg.. v. 1, p. 557-603.) ††BTR Armenian text with French translation. Neve, Felix. L'hymnologie armenienne. (Museon. Louvain, 1885. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 359-368.) ZAA Nilus Doxapatrius. Taxis ton Patriarchikon Thronon. Armenisch und Griechisch hrsg. von Franz Nikolaus Finck. Marburg: N. G. Elwert, 1902. 2 p.l., 46 p. 4 deg.. †*ONP Ormanian, Malachia. The Armenian Church. (Armenia. New York, 1911-13. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 11, p. 1-4, no. 12, p. 4-6; v. 5, p. 8-11, 42-44, 107-109, 154-155, 178-181, 202-205, 247-249, 279-282, 342-344, 377-378; v. 6, p. 18-19, 62-63, 87-89, 123-124, 147-148, 175-176, 211-212, 247-248, 270-271, 303-305, 334-336, 376-377.) †*ONK ---- The Armenian conversion to Christianity. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. f deg.. v. 8, p. 184-185.) †*ONK ---- The Church of Armenia, her history, doctrine, rule, discipline, liturgy, literature, and existing condition by Malachia Ormanian, formerly Armenian patriarch of Constantinople. Translated from the French edition by G. Marcar Gregory ... with an introduction by the Right Rev. J. E. C. Welldon. London: A. R. Mowbray & Co., Ltd. [pref. 1912.] xxxii, 271 p. 8 deg.. ZNV ---- L'eglise armenienne: son histoire, sa doctrine, son regime, sa discipline, sa liturgie, sa litterature, son present. Paris: E. Leroux, 1910. 2 p.l., x, 192 p. 8 deg.. ZNV ---- Unionist tendencies of the Armenian Church. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 231-232.) †*ONK Peirce, Louise Fagan. See Peirce, William F., and Louise F. Peirce. Peirce, William F., and Louise F. Peirce. The Armenian Church. (The New world. Boston, 1897. 8 deg.. v. 6, p. 56-69.) *DA Proclus, Saint, patriarch of Constantinople. Ein Briefwechsel zwischen Proklos und Sahak. Aus dem Armenischen uebersetzt von P. Aristaces Vardanian. (Wiener Zeitschrift fuer die Kunde des Morgenlandes. Wien, 1913. 8 deg.. Bd. 27, p. 415-441.) *OAA Ricaut, Paul. The present state of the Greek and Armenian churches, anno Christi, 1678. London: John Starkey, 1679. 16 p.l., 452 p. 12 deg.. ZNB Sahak, patriarch. The Armenian canons of St. Sahak Catholicos of Armenia (390-439 A.D.). [Translated by F. C. Conybeare.] (American journal of theology. Chicago, 1898. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 828-848.) ZEA ---- Isaaci magnae Armeniae catholici oratio invectiva adversus Armenios. (In: Andreas Gallandius, Bibliotheca veterum patrum. Venetiis, 1781. f deg.. v. 14, p. 409-446.) ††ZEL ---- Narratio de rebus Armeniae. (In: J. P. Migne, Patrologiae cursus completus ... series Graeca. Paris, 1864. 4 deg.. tomus 132, col. 1237-1258.) ZEL ---- Sancti patris nostri Isaaci magnae Armeniae catholici, oratio invectiva adversus Armenios. (In: J. P. Migne, Patrologiae cursus completus ... series Graeca. Paris, 1864. 4 deg.. tomus 132, col. 1155-1238.) ZEL ---- See also Proclus, Saint, patriarch of Constantinople. Samuel, Polykarp. See Vrthanes Kherthol. Schreiber, Ellis. The Armenian Church. (American Catholic quarterly review. Philadelphia, 1904. 8 deg.. v. 29, p. 772-784.) *DA Selim III, sultan of Turkey. Translation of an imperial berat issued by Sultan Selim III A. H. 1215, appointing the monk Hohannes patriarch of all the Armenians of Turkey, with notes by Rev. H. G. O. Dwight. (American Oriental Society. Journal. Boston, 1849. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 507-515.) *OAA Serpos, Giovanni de. Compendio storico di memorie cronologiche concernenti la religione e la morale della nazione armena suddita dell'impero ottomano.... Tomo 1-3. Venezia: nella Stamperia di Carlo Palese, 1786. 3 v. 12 deg.. BBX T., A. B. The Armenian Christmas and New Year. (Armenia. New York, 1911. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 8, p. 4-7.) †*ONK Tcheraz, Minas. L'eglise armenienne, son histoire, ses croyances. (Museon. Louvain, 1897. 8 deg.. tome 16, p. 324-329.) ZAA Ter Israel. Le synaxaire armenien de Ter Israel publie et traduit par ... G. Bayan ... [Partie] 1-2. Paris: Firmin-Didot & Cie., 1910. 4 deg.. (Patrologia orientalis. tome 5, fasc. 3; tome 6, fasc. 2.) †*OAC [Partie] 1. Mois de Navasard. [Partie] 2. Mois de Hori. Ter-Mekerttschian, Karapet. See Timothy, bishop of Alexandria. Ter-Minassiantz, Erwand. Die armenische Kirche in ihren Beziehungen zu den syrischen Kirchen bis zum Ende des 13. Jahrhunderts. Nach den armenischen und syrischen Quellen bearbeitet von E. Ter-Minassiantz. Leipzig: J. C. Hinrichs, 1904. xii, 212 p. 8 deg.. (Texte und Untersuchungen zur Geschichte der altchristlichen Literatur. N. F. Bd. 11, Heft 4.) ZE ---- See also Timothy, bishop of Alexandria. Theorianus. Theoriani disputatio secunda cum Nersete patriarcha generali Armeniorum. (In: J. P. Migne, Patrologiae cursus completus ... series Graeca. Paris, 1864. 4 deg.. tomus 133, col. 212-298.) ZEL ---- Theoriani orthodoxi disputatio cum Armeniorum Catholico. (In: J. P. Migne, Patrologiae cursus completus ... series Graeca. Paris, 1864. 4 deg.. tomus 133, col. 119-212.) ZEL Timothy, bishop of Alexandria. Timotheus Aelurus' des Patriarchen von Alexandrien Widerlegung der auf der Synode zu Chalcedon festgesetzten Lehre. Armenischer Text mit deutschem und armenischem Vorwort, zwei Tafeln und dreifachem Register hrsg. von ... Karapet Ter-Mekerttschian und ... Erwand Ter-Minassiantz. Leipzig: J. C. Hinrichs, 1908. ix, v-xxxv, 396 p., 2 facs. 8 deg.. *ONP Tondini de Quarenghi, C. Notice sur le calendrier liturgique de la nation armenienne. (Bessarione. Roma, 1906. 8 deg.. serie 2, v. 10, p. 275-294; serie 3, v. 1. p. 71-114.) *OAA Tourian, Kevork G. The Armenian Christmas. (Armenia. Boston, 1904. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 3, p. 38-45.) †*ONK Vardanian, Aristaces. See Proclus, Saint, patriarch of Constantinople. Veyssiere de la Croze, Mathurin. Histoire du christianisme d'Ethiopie et d'Armenie. La Haie: Veuve Le Vier & P. Paupie, 1739. 7 p.l., 402 p., 1 pl. 8 deg.. ZNZ Vida de S. Gregorio, patriarcha da Armenia. Conversao dos Armenios ao christianismo. Versao ethiopica publicada por F. M. Esteves Pereira. [Lisboa, 1903.] 42 p. 8 deg.. *OEE Villari, Luigi. The clergy at Etchmiadzin. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 300-302.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Fire and sword in the Caucasus. ---- A visit to Etchmiadzin. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 283-284.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Fire and sword in the Caucasus. Vollmer, Philipp. The Armenian Church. (Missionary review of the world. New York, 1896. 8 deg.. new series, v. 9, p. 193-197.) ZKVA Vrthanes Kherthol. Die Abhandlung "Gegen die Bilderstuermer." Aus dem Armenischen uebersetzt von P. Polykarp Samuel. (Wiener Zeitschrift fuer die Kunde des Morgenlandes. Wien, 1912. 8 deg.. Bd. 26, p. 275-293.) *OAA Williams, George. See Gregory of Bysantium, metropolitan of Chios. Williams, William Llewelyn. Armenia: past and present; a study and a forecast.... With an introduction by T. P. O'Connor, M.P. London: P. S. King & Son Ltd., 1916. xi, 211 p., 2 folded maps. 8 deg.. BBX ---- The Armenian Church. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 355-359.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Armenia: past and present, p. 99-108, 130-142. ---- The Armenian Church and the schism in Christendom. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 86-87.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Armenia: past and present, p. 108-119. ---- The struggle of the Armenian Church. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 101-102.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Armenia: past and present, p. 119-130. Wilson, Samuel Graham. The Armenian Church in its relation to the Russian government. (North American review. New York, 1905. 8 deg.. v. 180, p. 88-101.) *DA Yeshu' bar Shushan. Das Sendschreiben des Patriarchen Barschuschan an den Catholicus der Armenier. By Otto Lichti. (American Oriental Society. Journal. New Haven, 1912. 8 deg.. v. 32, p. 268-342.) *OAA Young, George. Communautes des Armeniens gregoriens. [Patriarcat armenien catholique.] (In his: Corps de droit ottoman. Oxford, 1905. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 70-106.) *OGM Zavak. Armenian Church music. (Ararat. London, 1916. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 136-140.) *ONK MECHITHARISTS Aharonian, Avedis. The Armenian academy at Venice. An impression of the place and of its members. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 141-149.) *ONK ---- A visit to St. Lazare. From the Armenian. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 7, p. 10-13.) †*ONK Aukerian, Haroutiun. A brief account of the Mechitaristican Society founded on the island of St. Lazaro. [Translated by Alexander Goode.] Venice: Armenian Academy, 1835. 62 p., 1 pl., 1 port. 16 deg.. ZMTB p. box 1 Compendiose notizie sulla congregazione de monaci armeni Mechitaristi di Venezia. [Venezia: Tipografia armena di S. Lazzaro,] 1819. 128 p., 1 pl. 16 deg.. *ONR Cover title: Vita del servo di Dio Mechitar, fondatore dell'ordine de' monaci armeni benedettini detti Mechitaristi, Venezia, 1887. Goode, Alexander. See Aukerian, Haroutiun. Kalemkiar, Gregoris. Eine Skizze der literarisch-typographischen Thaetigkeit der Mechitharisten-Congregation in Wien aus Anlass des 50jaehrigen Regierungs-Jubilaeums ... Kaiser Franz Joseph I. Wien: Mechitharisten-Congregations-Buchdruckerei, 1898. 4 p.l., 99 p. 8 deg.. *GD Langlois, Victor. La congregation mekhitariste et le couvent armenien de Saint-Lazare de Venise. (Revue de l'Orient, de l'Algerie et des colonies. Paris, 1861. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, tome 13, p. 383-397.) *OAA Leist, Arthur. Die Kongregation der Mechitaristen. (In his: Litterarische Skizzen. Leipzig [1886]. 12 deg.. p. 81-112.) *ONK Armenische Bibliothek. No. 2. Mechitharisten-Kongregation in Wien. Huschardzan. Festschrift aus Anlass des 100jaehrigen Bestandes der ... Kongregation ... (1811-1911), und des 25. Jahrganges der philologischen Monatsschrift "Handes Amsorya" (1887-1911). Hrsg. von der Mechitharisten-Kongregation unter Mitwirkung der Mitarbeiter der Monatsschrift und zahlreicher Armenisten. Wien: Mechitharisten-Kongregation, 1911. 7 p.l., 435 p., 3 pl., 1 port. f deg.. ††*ONK MISSIONS American Board of Commissioners for Foreign Missions. Historical sketch of the missions ... in European Turkey, Asia Minor and Armenia. New York: J. A. Gray, 1861. 46 p., 1 l. 8 deg.. ZKVN p.v.1 Barton, James Levi. Euphrates College. (Armenia. New York, 1910. 4 deg.. v. 4, no. 6, p. 2-4.) †*ONK ---- What America has done for the Armenians. (Armenia. Boston, 1904. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 3, p. 3-10.) †*ONK Conder, Josiah. See Smith, Eli, and H. G. O. Dwight. Dwight, Harrison Gray Otis. See Smith, Eli, and H. G. O. Dwight. Greene, Joseph K. Leavening the Levant. Boston: Pilgrim Press, 1916. xii, 353 p., 2 maps, 34 pl. 8 deg.. ZKVN Knapp, Grace Higley. The mission at Van; in Turkey in war time, by Grace Higley Knapp, with a chapter by Clarence D. Ussher, M. D., on the future of the mission at Van. New York: privately printed, 1915. 48 p., 1 port. 16 deg.. BTZE p.v.196 National Armenian Relief Committee. Brands from the burning. [New York,] n. d. 30 p. 24 deg.. SHS ---- Save the remnant. [New York,] n. d. 32 p. 24 deg.. SHS ---- The wards of Christendom. [New York,] n. d. 31 p. 24 deg.. SHS Pfeiffer, E. Die Anfaenge der protestantischen Kirche in Armenien 1813-1850. (Der Christliche Orient. Westend-Berlin, 1897. 4 deg.. 1897, p. 26-42, 78-85, 120-133.) †*OAA Richter, Julius. Protestant missions in Turkey and Armenia. (In his: A history of Protestant missions in the Near East. New York: F. H. Revell Co. [1910.] 8 deg.. p. 104-180.) ZKVI Smith, Eli, and H. G. O. Dwight. Missionary researches in Armenia: including a journey through Asia Minor, and into Georgia and Persia, with a visit to the Nestorian and Chaldean Christians of Oormiah and Salmas. To which is prefixed, A memoir on the geography and ancient history of Armenia, by the author of "The modern traveller" [Josiah Conder]. London: G. Wightman, 1834. lxxii, 472 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. BBY ---- Researches of the Rev. E. Smith and Rev. H. G. O. Dwight in Armenia: including a journey through Asia Minor, and into Georgia and Persia, with a visit to the Nestorian and Chaldean Christians of Oormiah and Salmas. Boston: Crocker and Brewster, 1833. 2 v. 12 deg.. BBY Terzian, Paul, bishop of Tarsus and Adana. The Church in Armenia. (Catholic world. New York. 1895. 8 deg.. v. 60, p. 212-226.) *DA Ussher, Clarence D. See Knapp, Grace Higley. West, Maria A. The romance of missions; or, Inside views of life and labor in the land of Ararat. With an introduction by Mrs. Charles.... New York: A. D. F. Randolph & Co. [cop. 1875.] 14, 710 p. 8 deg.. ZKVN White, G. E. Morning light in Asia Minor. (Missionary review of the world. New York, 1898. 8 deg.. new series, v. 11, p. 752-760.) ZKVA ARMENIAN QUESTION A., D. G. Armianskii vopros v Turtsii. (Iz perepiski s stambul'skim publitsistom.) (Russkaia Mysl'. Moscow, 1892. 8 deg.. 1892, no. 5, [part 2,] p. 60-77.) *QCA Armenian question in Turkey. Abbott, Lyman. The Armenian question. [New York: National Armenian Relief Committee,] n. d. 16 p. 16 deg.. SHS Apcar, Diana Agabeg. Russian occupation of Armenia. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 7, p. 8-9.) †*ONK ---- What the German foreign minister has said. "The powers," the Christians of the East, and the Turk. Russian occupation of Armenia. Open letter to the Right Honorable H. H. Asquith. Yokohama, 1913. 4 broadsides mounted on 11 leaves. 4 deg.. BBX Two of the broadsides are reprinted from The Far East, May 3, 1913 and July 5, 1913; and one reprinted from the Japan gazette, June 14, 1913. Armenia and her claims. Memorandum on Armenia and her claims to freedom and national independence presented to the Democratic Mid-Europe Union by Dr. G. Pasdermadjian ... and by Miran Sevasly. Part 1-2. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918-19. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 3-8, 72-81.) *ONK Part 1. Turkish Armenia and the Armenians in Turkey. Part 2. The situation of the Armenians, including Transcausasia and Turkey, prior to the present world war. Armenia and the powers: from behind the scenes. (Contemporary review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 69, p. 628-643.) *DA Armenia rediviva. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 339-347.) †*ONK The Armenian aspirations and revolutionary movements. Album, no. 1. n. p. [1916.] 32 l. ob. 8 deg.. *ONK Title from cover. Title also in Turkish, German and French. The Armenian question. [Signed Diplomatist.] (New review. London, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 12, p. 62-66.) *DA The Armenian question. [Signed An Eastern statesman.] (Contemporary review. London, 1880. 8 deg.. v. 37, p. 533-547.) *DA The Armenian question in the House of Commons. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. f deg.. v. 8, p. 91-95, 108-109.) †*ONK The Armenian troubles and where the responsibility lies, by a correspondent. New York: [J. J. Little & Co.,] 1895. 35 p. 8 deg.. BBH p.v.2 Arpee, Leon. Armenia and the peace conference. (New Armenia. New York, 1918. 4 deg.. v. 10, p. 180-182.) †*ONK Barre, Andre. L'esclavage blanc (Armenie et Macedoine). Paris: L. Michaud [1908]. 320 p. 12 deg.. (In his: Collection d'histoire contemporaine.) GIH Benjamin, Samuel Greene Wheeler. The Armenians and the Porte. (Atlantic monthly. Boston, 1891. 8 deg.. v. 67, p. 524-530.) *DA Benson, Edward Frederic. Crescent and iron cross. London: Hodder and Stoughton, 1918. x, 268 p., 3 maps. 12 deg.. BTZE ---- ---- New York: George H. Doran Co. [1918.] vii p., 1 l., 11-240 p., 2 maps. 12 deg.. BTZE Bishop, Isabella Lucy Bird. The shadow of the Kurd. (Contemporary review. London, 1891. 8 deg.. v. 59, p. 642-654, 819-835.) *DA Blunt, Wilfrid Scawen. Turkish misgovernment. (Nineteenth century. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 40, p. 838-846.) *DA Bowles, Thomas Gibson. The Cyprus convention. (Fortnightly review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. new series, v. 60, p. 626-634.) *DA Bratter, C. Adolf. Die armenische Frage. Berlin: Concordia deutsche Verlags-Anstalt, G. m. b. H., 1915. 40 p. 8 deg.. BTZE p.v.174 Bryce (1. viscount), James Bryce. The Armenian question. (Century. New York, 1895. 8 deg.. new series, v. 29, p. 150-154.) *DA ---- Die armenische Frage in den letzten 20 Jahren. (Der Christliche Orient. Westend-Berlin, 1897. 4 deg.. 1897, p. 481-505, 529-555.) †*OAA Translated from his Transcaucasia and Ararat, London, 1896. ---- The future of Armenia. (Contemporary review. London, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 114, p. 604-611.) *DA Translated in La Voix de l'Armenie, annee 2, p. 9-20, *ONK. ---- The future of Asiatic Turkey. (Fortnightly review. London, 1878. 8 deg.. new series, v. 23, p. 925-936.) *DA Reprinted in Armenia, v. 3, no. 3, p. 3-20, Jan., 1907, †*ONK. ---- Transcaucasia and Ararat, being notes of a vacation tour in the autumn of 1876. 4th ed. rev., with a supplementary chapter on the recent history of the Armenian question. London: Macmillan and Co., 1896. xix, 526 p., 1 map, 1 pl. 8 deg.. PSK Morton, Oliver T. Mr. James Bryce on the Armenian question. (Dial. Chicago, 1897. 4 deg.. v. 22, p. 113-115.) *DA Buxton, Harold. Side-lights on the Armenian question. (Contemporary review. London, 1913. 8 deg.. v. 104, p. 789-798.) *DA Buxton, Noel. The Russians in Armenia. (Nineteenth century. London, 1913. 8 deg.. v. 74, p. 1357-1366.) *DA Cavendish, Lucy C. F., lady. The peril of Armenia. (Contemporary review. London, 1913. 8 deg.. v. 103, p. 33-39.) *DA Reprinted in Armenia, v. 6, p. 229-234, †*ONK. Charmetant, Felix. Das sterbende Armenien und das christliche Europa. (Der Christliche Orient. Westend-Berlin, 1897. 4 deg.. 1897, p. 289-301, 337-349.) †*OAA Clinch, Bryan J. The Christians under Turkish rule. (American Catholic quarterly review. Philadelphia, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 21, p. 399-409.) *DA Collet, C. D. The new crusade against the Turk. (Imperial and Asiatic quarterly review. Woking, 1895. 8 deg.. new series, v. 9, p. 53-56.) *OAA Contenson, Ludovic, baron de. The movement for Armenian emancipation. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 8, p. 6-15.) †*ONK ---- La question armenienne. (Comite de l'Asie francaise. Bulletin mensuel. Paris, 1913. 4 deg.. annee 13, p. 8-16.) †BBA ---- Les reformes en Turquie d'Asie; la question armenienne, la question syrienne. Paris: Plon-Nourrit & Cie., 1913. 3 p.l., vii, 135 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. *ONQ Coulon, Henri. L'heroisme des Armeniens. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 290-295.) *ONK Der-Hagopian, Nishan. And what of Armenia? (Forum. New York, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 58, p. 49-56.) *DA Dicey, Edward. Nubar Pasha and our Asian protectorate. (Nineteenth century. London, 1878. 8 deg.. v. 4, p. 548-559.) *DA Dillon, Emile Joseph. Armenia: an appeal. (Contemporary review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 69, p. 1-19.) *DA ---- Armenia and the Turk. Poetic justice. Russia's solution of the Armenian problem. (Contemporary review. London, 1914. 8 deg.. v. 105, p. 126-128.) *DA ---- The condition of Armenia. (Contemporary review. London, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 68, p. 153-189.) *DA ---- The fiasco in Armenia. (Fortnightly review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. new series, v. 59, p. 341-358.) *DA Diplomatische Aktenstuecke zur armenischen Frage. (Der Christliche Orient. Westend-Berlin, 1897. 4 deg.. 1897, p. 66-73, 173-175.) †*OAA Doumergue, Emile. Ce que la Suisse a fait pour l'Armenie. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 532-543.) *ONK Dzotsikian, S. M. Haigagank. [The Armenians and their national aspirations.] Providence, 1916. 2 p.l., 207 p. 12 deg.. *ONP The Eastern question. (Blackwood's Edinburgh magazine. Edinburgh, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 160, p. 847-858.) *DA Einstein, Lewis David. Inside Constantinople; a diplomatist's diary during the Dardanelles expedition, April-September, 1915, by Lewis Einstein. London: J. Murray, 1917. xvi, 291 p. 8 deg.. BTZE Engelhardt, Edouard. L'Angleterre et la Russie a propos de la question armenienne. (Revue de droit international et de legislation comparee. Bruxelles, 1883. 8 deg.. tome 15, p. 146-159.) XBA ---- L'enquete armenienne. (Revue francaise de l'etranger et des colonies. Paris, 1888. 8 deg.. tome 8, p. 31-34.) KAA England's policy in Turkey. (Fortnightly review. London, 1896. 8. new series, v. 59, p. 286-290.) *DA Geffcken, F. Heinrich. Turkish reforms and Armenia. (Nineteenth century. London, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 38, p. 991-1000.) *DA Ghulam-us-Saqlain. The Mussalmans of India and the Armenian question. (Nineteenth century. London, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 37, p. 926-939.) *DA Gladstone, William Ewart. Mr. Gladstone on the Armenian question. (Christian literature. New York, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 14, p. 337-348.) *DA Gobat, Albert. Protection of the Armenians; appeal to Sir Edward Grey. [Yokohama, 1913?]. 1 broadside mounted. 4 deg.. BBX Repr.: Japan Gazette, June 23, 1913. Bound with: D. A. Apcar, What the German foreign minister has said. Grabowsky, Adolf. Die armenische Frage. (Zeitschrift fuer Politik. Berlin, 1914. 8 deg.. Bd. 7, p. 699-715.) SEA Great Britain.--Foreign Office. Turkey. 1896, no. 2. Correspondence relative to the Armenian question, and reports from Her Majesty's consular officers in Asiatic Turkey. London: Harrison and Sons [1896]. xxiv, 339 p. f deg.. (Great Britain.--Parliament. Sessional papers. 1896, v. 95.) *SDD Gulesian, M. H. England's hand in Turkish massacres. (Arena. Boston, 1897. 8 deg.. v. 17, p. 271-282.) *DA Harris, Walter B. An unbiassed view of the Armenian question. (Blackwood's Edinburgh magazine. Edinburgh, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 158, p. 483-492.) *DA Hart, Albert Bushnell. Free Armenia. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 15-19.) *ONK Havemeyer, John C. The relation of the United States to Armenia. An open letter to the President from J. C. Havemeyer. [Yonkers, 1896.] 15 p. 16 deg.. BBH p.v.4 Repr.: The New York Times. Haweis, Hugh Reginald. A Persian on the Armenian massacres. (New century review. London, 1897. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 70-76.) *DA Herrick, George F. Armenians and American interests under Russia. (American review of reviews. New York, 1916. 8 deg.. v. 54, p. 80-84.) *DA Heyfelder, O. Die Armenier und ihre Zukunft. (Deutsche Rundschau. Wien, 1890. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 12, p. 343-351.) KAA Hoberg, Otto. Die armenische Frage und der Weltkrieg. (Nord und Sued. Breslau, 1915. 8 deg.. Bd. 154, p. 183-185.) *DF Houghton, Louise Seymour. The Armenian uprising. (Outlook. New York, 1904. 8 deg.. v. 78, p. 369-372.) *DA How to save alive the orphan children of martyrs in Armenia. [New York: National Armenian Relief Committee, 1896?] 27 p. 24 deg.. BBH p.v.4 Howard, Mary. The worst sufferer of the war. What hope is there for the remnants of massacred Armenia? (Asia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 17, p. 433-439.) †*OAA Howerth, Ira W., translator. See Tchobanian, Archag. Ismail Kemal, bey. Armenia and the Armenians. (Fortnightly review. New York, 1917. 4 deg.. new series, v. 102, p. 494-509.) *DA K armianskomu voprosu v Turtsii. (Sovremennyi mir. Petrograd, 1915. 8 deg.. 1915, no. 8, p. 144-149.) *QCA Concerning the Armenian problem in Turkey. Kelekian, Diran. La Turquie et son souverain: la crise actuelle, ses origines, sa solution. (Nineteenth century. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 40, p. 689-698.) *DA Khalil Khalid Efendi. The Armenian question. (Imperial and Asiatic quarterly review. Woking, 1895. 8 deg.. new series, v. 10, p. 469-472.) *OAA Kovalevski, Maksim. Armiaiskii vopros. (Viestnik Evropy. Petrograd, 1915. 8 deg.. 1915, no. 6, p. 256-274.) *QCA The Armenian question. ---- Armianskii vopros. (Viestnik Evropy. St. Petersburg, 1913. 8 deg.. 1913, no. 12, p. 288-308.) *QCA The Armenian question. Leart, Marcel. The history of the Armenian question. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 7, p. 37-39.) †*ONK ---- La question armenienne a la lumiere des documents. Paris: A. Challamel, 1913. 76 p., 1 map. 8 deg.. *ONQ Lecarpentier, G. La nouvelle question d'Armenie. (Revue des sciences politiques. Paris, 1915. 8 deg.. tome 34, p. 462-473.) SEA Leroy-Beaulieu, Anatole. Les Armeniens et la question armenienne; conference faite par M. Anatole Leroy-Beaulieu ... a l'Hotel des Societes savantes, le 9 juin, 1896. Paris: Clamaron-Graff, 1896. 40 p. 8 deg.. BBX Levine, Isaac Don. Armenia resurrected. (Asia. New York, 1919. f deg.. v. 19, p. 323-329.) †*OAA Little, Edward Campbell. Armenia and Turkey. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 172-190, 239-248.) *ONK Reprinted from the Congressional record, March 4, 1918. Lord Rosebery's second thoughts. [Signed Diplomaticus.] (Fortnightly review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. new series, v. 60, p. 615-625.) *DA Lynch, Henry Finnis Blosse. The Armenian question. (Contemporary review. London, 1894. 8 deg.. v. 65, p. 847-865; v. 66, p. 91-107, 435-456.) *DA ---- The Armenian question: Europe or Russia? (Contemporary review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 69, p. 270-276.) *DA McDermot, George. The great assassin and the Christians of Armenia. (Catholic world. New York, 1897. 8 deg.. v. 64, p. 295-305.) *DA Macler, Frederic. Autour de l'Armenie. Paris: E. Nourry, 1917. 3 p.l., iii-xvi, 326 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. BBX ---- The beginnings of the Armenian movement. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. f deg.. v. 8, p. 375-376.) †*ONK Mahdesian, Arshag. Armenia, her culture and aspirations. [Worcester, Mass., 1917.] 448-466 p. 8 deg.. *ONQ Repr.: Journal of race development, v. 7, p. 448-466, QOA. Reprinted in New Armenia, v. 9, p. 181-183, 195-198, †*ONK. Malcolm, James Aratoon. An Armenian's cry for Armenia. (Nineteenth century. London, 1890. 8 deg.. v. 28, p. 640-647.) *DA ---- A cry for Armenia. (Armenia. Boston, 1907. 4 deg.. v. 3, no. 8, p. 5-14.) †*ONK Mangasarian, M. M. Armenia and Turkey. (New Armenia. New York, 1918. f deg.. v. 10, p. 24-25.) †*ONK ---- Armenia's impending doom: our duty. (Forum. New York, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 21, p. 449-459.) *DA Manifestations franco-anglo-italiennes. Pour l'Armenie et la Macedoine: MM. M. Berthelot, Charmetant.... Preface de Victor Berard, introduction de Pierre Quillard, rapport de Francis de Pressense. Paris: Societe nouvelle de librairie & d'edition, 1904. 3 p.l., vi-xxx, 319 p. 8 deg.. BBX Marbeau, Edouard. L'Armenie et l'opinion publique. (Revue francaise de l'etranger et des colonies. Paris, 1887. 8 deg.. tome 6, p. 321-340.) KAA Meyners d'Estrey, Guillaume Henry Jean, comte. Caucase et Armenie. Avenir de la question d'Orient. (Annales de l'Extreme Orient. Paris, 1886-87. 4 deg.. tome 9, p. 193-211, 243-251, 267-277, 289-297.) *OWB Morgan, Jacques Jean Marie de. Armenia and Europe. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 261-263.) †*ONK ---- L'Armenie instrument de paix mondiale. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 626-631.) *ONK ---- Essai sur les nationalites. Paris: Berger-Levrault, 1917. xi, 136 p., 2 l. 8 deg.. BBX and BTZE Partie 1. Le probleme des nationalites. Partie 2. Les Armeniens. ---- The fate of the Armenians. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 214-216.) †*ONK ---- La Transcaucasie et l'Armenie Cles des Indes. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 329-334.) *ONK Moritz, Bernhard. Die armenisch-kurdische Frage. (Grenzboten. Berlin, 1913. 8 deg.. Jahrg. 72, Bd. 3, p. 1-13.) *DF Mouchek Yebiscobos (Seropian). Europe's duty to Armenia. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 133-134.) †*ONK Murad, bey. La force et la faiblesse de la Turquie. Les coupables et les innocents. Geneve: J. Mouille, 1897. 60 p. 2. ed. 8 deg.. GIC p.v.2 O'Connor, Thomas Power. Armenia and her future. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 245-247.) †*ONK ---- Armenia: united and autonomous. (Asia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 17, p. 649-650.) †*OAA O'Shea, John J. Unhappy Armenia. (Catholic world. New York, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 60, p. 553-561.) *DA Our obligations to Armenia. (Macmillan's magazine. London, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 71, p. 340-345.) *DA Pasdermadjian, G. Why Armenia should be free. Armenia's role in the present war. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918-19. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 20-28, 82-92.) *ONK The Peace Congress and the Armenian question. (Armenia. Boston, 1904. 4 deg.. v. 1, no. 2, p. 39-44.) †*ONK Pears, Sir Edwin. Turkey and the war. (Contemporary review. London, 1914. 8 deg.. v. 106, p. 584-597.) *DA Peterson, Theodore. Turkey and the Armenian crisis. (Catholic world. New York, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 61, p. 665-676.) *DA Pignot, Emile. L'Armenie et la question des nationalites. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 145-149.) *ONK Pinon, Rene. L'Armenie et la capitulation maximaliste. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 137-144.) *ONK ---- Aux neutres. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 281-289.) *ONK ---- L'avenir de la Transcaucasie. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 201-208.) *ONK ---- D'ou peut naitre une Armenie independante? (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 443-450.) *ONK ---- L'independance de l'Armenie. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 863-870.) *ONK ---- Un plaidoyer turc sur la question des massacres. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 513-521.) *ONK ---- La resurrection de l'Asie occidentale. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 681-687.) *ONK Pressense, Francis de. The Turks in Armenia. (Chautauquan. Meadville, Pa., 1896. 8 deg.. v. 22, p. 591-594.) *DA ---- See also Manifestations franco-anglo-italiennes. Price, M. Philips. The problem of Asiatic Turkey. (Contemporary review. London, 1914. 8 deg.. v. 105, p. 211-219.) *DA Probyn, John Webb. Armenia and the Lebanon. London: Eastern Question Association [1877?]. 19 p. 8 deg.. (Papers on the Eastern question. no. 10.) BBH p.v.4 La Question armenienne. Les massacres d'Adana. [Signed Un ancien diplomate.] (Nouvelle revue. Paris, 1909. 8 deg.. serie 3, tome 10, p. 3-16.) *DM Quillard, Pierre. See Manifestations franco-anglo-italiennes. Rafiueddin Ahmad. A Moslem view of Abdul Hamid and the Powers. (Nineteenth century. London, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 38, p. 156-164.) *DA Ramsay, Sir William Mitchell. The Armenian atrocities. (Christian literature. New York, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 14, p. 543-552.) *DA Rassam, Hormuzd. The Armenian difficulty. Results of a local enquiry. (Imperial and Asiatic quarterly review. Woking, 1895. 8 deg.. new series, v. 9, p. 42-47.) *OAA ---- The Armenian question. (Imperial and Asiatic quarterly review. Woking, 1895. 8 deg.. new series, v. 10, p. 49-57.) *OAA Robinson, Emily J. The case of our ally Armenia. (Asiatic review. London, 1919. 8 deg.. new series, v. 15, p. 253-256.) *OAA ---- A new Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 323-325.) †*ONK ---- The regeneration of Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1918. f deg.. v. 10, p. 147-149.) †*ONK ---- The truth about Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 362-363.) †*ONK Rohrbach, Paul. Aus Turan und Armenien. Studie zur russischen Weltpolitik. (Preussische Jahrbuecher. Berlin, 1897. 8 deg.. Bd. 89, p. 53-82, 256-284, 431-469; Bd. 90, p. 101-132, 280-310, 437-185.) *DF ---- A contribution to the Armenian question. (Forum. New York, 1900. 8 deg.. v. 29, p. 481-492.) *DA Safir Efendi. The Armenian agitation. (Imperial and Asiatic quarterly review. Woking, 1895. 8 deg.. new series, v. 9, p. 48-52.) *OAA Safrastian, A. S. The existing position in Armenia. (Asiatic review. London, 1915. 8 deg.. v. 7, p. 271-278.) *OAA ---- Germany and Armenia. (Ararat. London, 1917-18. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 204-209, 254-259, 296-300, 338-342.) *ONK ---- Russia and Armenia. (Ararat. London, 1917. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 154-160.) *ONK Salmone, H. Anthony. The real rulers of Turkey. (Nineteenth century. London, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 37, p. 719-733.) *DA Santini, Felice. La questione armena e gli Armeni in Turchia. (Nuova antologia. Roma, 1905. 8 deg.. serie 4, v. 119, p. 614-621.) NNA Scatcherd, F. R. Armenia's true interests and sympathies in the great war. (Asiatic review. London, 1915. 8 deg.. series 4, v. 6, p. 319-324.) *OAA ---- The Armenian question. (Asiatic review. London, 1914. 8 deg.. series 4, v. 4, p. 319-325.) *OAA Sevasly, Miran. The Armenian question. (New review. London, 1889. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 305-316.) *DA Shahid Bey, Sadik. Islam, Turkey and Armenia, and how they happened. By Sadik Shahid Bey. Turkish mysteries unveiled. [St. Louis: C. B. Woodward Co., cop. 1898.] 222 p., 1 l. 12 deg.. *ONQ Siebert, Wilbur Henry. Independence for Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 337-338.) †*ONK ---- The justice of granting autonomy to Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. f deg.. v. 8, p. 355-357.) †*ONK Stein, Robert. Armenia must have a European governor. (Arena. Boston, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 12, p. 368-390.) *DA Stevenson, Francis S. Armenia. (Contemporary review. London, 1895. 8 deg.. v. 67, p. 201-209.) *DA Stride, W. K. The immediate future of Armenia: a suggestion. (Forum. New York, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 22, p. 308-320.) *DA Symonds, Arthur G. Armenia. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 266-269.) †*ONK Tchobanian, Archag. Armenia's loyalty to the allies. (Armenian herald. Boston, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 1, p. 573-576.) *ONK ---- The Armenian question and Europe. [Translated from the French by Ira W. Howerth.] (International monthly. Burlington, Vt., 1902. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 149-165.) *DA Reprinted in Armenia, v. 1, no. 1, p. 19-35, †*ONK. Thoumaian, G. The hour has struck. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 165-167.) †*ONK ---- The last chance. (Contemporary review. London, 1913. 8 deg.. v. 103, p. 797-803.) *DA ---- Turkey and Armenia. (Contemporary review. New York, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 114, p. 188-194.) *DA Tonapetean, P. Russian and British policy towards Armenia. (Ararat. London, 1915-17. 8 deg.. v. 2, p. 374-385, 419-428; v. 3, p. 162-170, 320-327, 458-465; v. 4, p. 23-32.) *ONK Toynbee, Arnold Joseph. The position of Armenia. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 307-308.) †*ONK The Two Eastern questions. [Signed W.] (Fortnightly review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. new series, v. 59, p. 193-208.) *DA Upton, Edgar W. Can Armenia be kept alive as a nation? (Armenia. Boston, 1907. 4 deg.. v. 3, no. 5, p. 12-17.) †*ONK Varandian, Mikael. Armenia and the Armenian question. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 294-296.) †*ONK ---- L'Armenie et la question armenienne. Avec une preface de Victor Berard. Laval: G. Kavanagh et Cie. [pref. 1917.] 115 p. 12 deg.. BBX Varaztad, Puzant. The Armenian question. (Armenia. New York, 1913. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 365-368.) †*ONK Vernes, Maurice. L'avenir de l'Armenie et de l'Asie occidentale. (La Voix de l'Armenie. Paris, 1918. 8 deg.. annee 1, p. 522-531.) *ONK Villari, Luigi. The anarchy in the Caucasus. A new phase of the Armenian question. (Fortnightly review. London, 1906. 8 deg.. new series, v. 79, p. 357-367.) *DA Vorontzov-Dashkov, I. I. Iz zapisok. (Golos minuvshago. Moscow, 1916. 8 deg.. 1916, no. 9, p. 139-147.) *QCA Memoirs. Watson, William. The purple East. A series of sonnets on England's desertion of Armenia. London: John Lane, 1896. 48 p., 1 pl. 3. ed. 12 deg.. NCM ---- ---- Chicago: Stone & Kimball, 1896. 49 p. 16 deg.. NCM Wheeler, Everett Pepperrell. Armenian independence. (New Armenia. New York, 1917. f deg.. v. 9, p. 275-276.) †*ONK Williams, Aneurin. Armenia: is it the end? (Contemporary review. New York, 1915. 8 deg.. v. 108, p. 555-561.) *DA Williams, William Llewelyn. Armenian aspirations. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. f deg.. v. 8, p. 359-361.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Armenia: past and present, p. 162-174. ---- The modern problem. (New Armenia. New York, 1916. f deg.. v. 8, p. 341-343.) †*ONK Reprinted from his Armenia: past and present, p. 147-161. Zarzecki, S. La question kurdo-armenienne. (Revue de Paris. Paris, 1914. 8 deg.. 1914, v. 2, p. 872-894.) *DM ARMENIANS IN OTHER COUNTRIES Avdyeyev. Armiane v Avstro-Vengrii. (Kavkazskii Viestnik. Tiflis, 1900. 8 deg.. 1900, no. 1, [part 2,] p. 102-105; no. 4, [part 2,] p. 79-92.) *QCA The Armenians in Austria and Hungary. ---- Armiane v Rumynii. (Kavkazskii Viestnik. Tiflis, 1901. 8 deg.. 1901, no. 4, [part 2,] p. 44-51.) *QCA The Armenians in Rumania. Bedikian, Dikran M. The Armenian-American and the question of immigration. (Armenia. Boston, 1905. 4 deg.. v. 2, no. 2-3, p. 56-62.) †*ONK Bent, J. Theodore. Notes on the Armenians in Asia Minor. (Manchester Geographical Society. Journal. Manchester, 1890. 8 deg.. v. 6, p. 220-222.) KAA Berberov, R. I. Polozhenie armian v rossii. (Russkaia mysl'. Moscow, 1905. 8 deg.. 1905, no. 11, [part 2,] p. 145-158.) *QCA The position of the Armenians in Russia. Bischoff, Ferdinand. Urkunden zur Geschichte der Armenier in Lemberg. Hrsg. von Ferdinand Bischoff. (Archiv fuer Kunde oesterreichischer Geschichts-Quellen. Wien, 1865. 8 deg.. Bd. 32, p. 1-155.) FAA Cons, Emma. Armenian exiles in Cyprus. (Contemporary review. London, 1896. 8 deg.. v. 70, p. 888-895.) *DA Contenson, Ludovic de. Les Armeniens du Caucase. (Correspondant. Paris, 1905. 8 deg.. nouvelle serie, v. 185, p. 543-557.) *DM Goehlert, Vinzent. Die Armenier in Europa und insbesondere in Oesterreich-Ungarn. (Ausland. Stuttgart, 1886. 4 deg.. v. 59, p. 489-491.) †KAA Gulesian, M. H. The Armenian refugees. (Arena. Boston, 1897. 8 deg.. v. 17, p. 652-662.) *DA Khakhanof, Alexandre. La situation des Armeniens dans le royaume de Georgie. (Journal asiatique. Paris, 1898. 8 deg.. serie 9, v. 11, p. 337-344.) *OAA Marshall, Annie C. The Armenians in America. (Armenia. Boston, 1907. 4 deg.. v. 3, no. 6, p. 36-43.) †*ONK ---- A visit to the Armenian church and to Ter-Maroukian's studio at Paris. (Armenia. New York, 1912. 4 deg.. v. 6, p. 7-9.) †*ONK Mouchek Yebiscobos (Seropian). Americahai daretsoitse, 1912. [Armeno-American year-book, 1912.] Boston, [1911]. 48, 383 p. 8 deg.. *ONK ---- Manchestry Hai kaghoutu. [The Armenian colony in Manchester, England.] Boston, 1911. 13, 270 p., 1 l., 9 pl. 12 deg.. *ONR Ob Armianakh, starinnykh poselentsakh Pol'shi. (Viestnik Evropy. Moscow, 1825. 8 deg.. 1825, no. 7-8, p. 111-117.) *QCA The Armenians in Poland. Pavlovich, M. Rossiia i armianskii narod. (Sovremennik. St. Petersburg, 1913. 8 deg.. 1913, no. 11, p. 162-179.) *QCA Russia and the Armenian people. Pisemski, A. Astrakhanskie armiane. Pz putevykh zapisok. 16 p. (Biblioteka dlia Chteniia. St. Petersburg, 1858. 8 deg.. 1858, v. 5.) *QCA The Armenians of Astrakhan. Sazonov, A. N. Nieskol'ko tsyfr ob armianakh na Kavkazie. (Russkaia Mysl'. Moscow, 1896. 8 deg.. 1896, no. 9, [part 2,] p. 58-73; no. 10, [part 2,] p. 159-173.) *QCA Statistics of the Armenians in the Caucasus. Seropian, Mouchek. See Mouchek Yebiscobos (Seropian). Seth, Mesrovb J. History of the Armenians in India, from the earliest times to the present day. London: Luzac & Co., 1897. xxii p., 1 l., 190 p., 1 fac. 12 deg.. *ONR Tchobanian, Archag. La France et le peuple armenien. Paris: Imprimerie Berger-Levrault, 1917. 40 p. 8 deg.. *ONR Thoumaian, G. The Armenians in Egypt. (New Armenia. New York, 1918. 4 deg.. v. 10, p. 186-188.) †*ONK ---- The Armenians in India. (Ararat. London, 1918. 8 deg.. v. 5, p. 320-325.) *ONK INDEX A A., D. G. Armyanski vopros v Turtzii, 73. Abaza, V. A. Istoriya Armenii, 21. Abbott, K. E. Notes of tour in Armenia, 7. Abbott, Lyman. Armenian question, 73. Abbruzzese, Antonio: Le relazioni fra l'Impero Romano e l'Armenia, a tempo di Augusto, 21. Le relazioni fra l'Impero Romano e l'Armenia a tempo di Tiberio, 21. Le relazioni politiche fra l'Impero Romano e l'Armenia da Claudio a Traiano, 21. Abdullah, Seraphin. Verification d'une date, 21. Abdullah, Seraphin, and F. Macler. Etudes sur la miniature armenienne, 20. Abich, Hermann: Der Ararat, 46. Die Besteigung des Ararat, 7. Ein Cyclus fundamental barometrischer Hoehenbestimmungen auf dem armenischen Hochlande, 46. Die Fulguriten im Andesit des kleinen Ararat, 46. Geologische Skizzen aus Transkaukasien, 46. Hauteurs absolues du systeme de l'Ararat, 7. [Observations sur le mont Ararat], 46. Sur les ruines d'Ani, 18. Ueber die Lage der Schneegraenze und die Gletscher der Gegenwart im Kaukasus, 46. Ueber das Steinsalz und seine geologische Stellung im russischen Armenien, 46. Vergleichende chemische Untersuchungen der Wasser des Caspischen Meeres, 7. Vergleichende Grundzuege der Geologie des Kaukasus wie der armenischen und nordpersischen Gebirge, 46. Zur Geologie des suedoestlichen Kaukasus, 46. Abuhaiatian, Hagop. Pastor Hagop Abuhaiatian von Urfa, 41. Acogh'ig de Daron, Etienne. Histoire universelle, 40. Adadourian, Haig. Armenian coat of arms, 18. Adana massacres, 36. Adger, J. B. My life and times, 42. Adjarian, H.: Classification des dialectes armeniens, 47. Lautlehre des Van-Dialekts, 47. S. Mesropi ev krerou kiudi badmoutian aghpiurnern ou anonts knnoutiunu, 47. Adontz, N. Armeniya v epokhu Yustiniana, 21. Aganoon, A. I. Dissertation on antiquity of Armenian language, 47. Agathangelos: Agathange. Histoire du regne de Tiridate, 21. Agathangelus neu hrsg. von P. de Lagarde, 21. Badmoutiun, 21. Agop, Joannes: Grammatica Latina, Armenice explicata, 47. Puritas Haygica, 48. Puritas linguae Armenicae, 48. Aharonian, Avedis: Armenian academy at Venice, 72. Armenische Erzaehlungen, 59. Guteton da lakto, 60. Honor, 60. Materi; razskazy, 60. Mother Armenia, 62. Vers la liberte, 60. Visit to St. Lazare, 72. Ainsworth, W. F. Travels and researches in Asia Minor, 7. Ajcatur. Armena fabelo, 60. Akulian, Aram. Einverleibung armenischer Territorien durch Byzanz im XI. Jahrhundert, 21. Alaux, L. P. Armenian schools, 7. Alelouia Yerousaghem, 62. Alishanian, Gheuont: Armenian popular songs, 57. Deux descriptions armeniennes des lieux saints de Palestine, 62. The lily of Shavarshan, 57. Sissouan, 8. Table bibliographique, 5. Topographie de la Grande Armenie, 8. Zartangark avedarani mlke Takouhuoh, 20. Allen, T. G., and W. L. Sachtleben. Across Asia, 8. Alphabetum Armenum, 48. American Armenian Relief Fund. Cry of Armenia, 36. American Board of Commissioners for Foreign Missions. Historical sketch of missions ... in Asia Minor and Armenia, 72. American Committee for Armenian and Syrian Relief: More material for sermon on Bible lands, 36. National test of brotherhood, 36. American sacred songs, 65. Amfiteatrov, A. V. Armeniya i Rim, 21. Anderson, Antony. Hovsep Pushman, 41. Anderson, William. Notes on geography, 31. Andreasian, Dikran. Comment un drapeau sauva quatre mille Armeniens, 36. Apcar, D. A.: Betrayed Armenia, 36. In His name, 36. On cross of Europe's imperialism, Armenia crucified, 36. Peace and no peace, 36. Peace problem, 36. Russian occupation of Armenia, 73. Truth about Armenian massacres, 37. Turkish constitution and Armenia, 22. What German foreign minister has said, 73. Apellian, Aleksandir. Boedi yrazi, 60. Aptowitzer, V.: Beitraege zur mosaischen Rezeption im armenischen Recht, 45. Zur Geschichte des armenischen Rechtes, 45. Arachin tasakirk mangants, 48. Arakelian, Hambartzoum: Contes et nouvelles, 60. Les rapports des Armeniens avec l'Occident, 22. Ararat, 7. Der Ararat, 8. Archaeologische, Bemerkungen ueber Armenien, 18. Argyll (8. duke), G. D. Campbell. Our responsibilities for Turkey, 37. Arisdagues de Lasdiverd. Histoire d'Armenie, 22. Armenia. Letter from duke of Argyll, &c., 37. Armenia and her claims, 73. Armenia and powers, 73. Armenia rediviva, 73. Armenian aspirations and revolutionary movements, 73. Armenian Church: Garkavorootun Hasaragatz Aghotitz, 68. Liturgia armena trasportata in italiano, 68. Liturgie de la messe armenienne, 68. Rituale Armenorum, 68. Armenian deportations, 37. Armenian documents, 37. Armenian herald, 7. Armenian Huntchakist Party.--Central Committee. Memorial, 22. Armenian literature, 60. Armenian massacre, 37. Armenian people and Ottoman government, 22. Armenian poems, 57. Armenian question, 73. Armenian question in House of Commons, 73. Armenian Relief Association. Bulletin, 7. Armenian troubles, 73. Armenians, 22. Armenians and eastern question, 8. Armenians taking stock of their national church, 68. Armenische Bibliothek, 60. Die Armenischen Unruhen, 22. L'Armeno-Veneto, 22. Arnot, Robert. Armenian literature, 56. Arpee, Leon: Armenia and peace conference, 73. Armenian awakening, 68. Arzanov, D.: Istoricheski vzglyad na Armeniyu i Georgiyu, 22. Zamyechaniya ob Armenii i Armyanakh, 22. Arzruni, Andreas. Reise nach Sued-Kaukasien, 8. Asbarez, 7. Asgian, G.: La chiesa armena e l'arianesimo, 68. La s. sede e la nazione armena, 68. Aslan, Kevork. Etudes historiques sur le peuple armenien, 22. Assassination of Armenia, 37. Assises d'Antioche, 62. Les Atrocites en Armenie, 37. Aucher, G. Bollettino: Armeno, 5. Augustin Badjetsi. Itineraire, 62. Aukerian, Haroutiun: Brief account of Mechitaristican Society, 72. Dictionary English and Armenian, 48. Dictionnaire abrege francais-armenien, 48. Grammar Armenian and English, 48. Grammar English and Armenian, 48. Aukerian, Haroutiun, and G. G. N. Byron, 6. Baron Byron. Grammar, Armenian and English, 48. Aukerian, Megerdich, vartabed. Liagadar vark ev vgayapanoutiun srpots, 68. Avakian, Hovhannes, and Bedros Hovnanian, editors. Koharnir Hai kraganoutian, 62. Avdyeyev: Armyane v Avstro-Vengrii, 78. Armyane v Rumynii, 78. Avedikian, Gabriele, Khatchadroh Surmelian and Megerdich Aukerian. Nor parkirk Haigasyian lezui, 48. Avidaranian, H., translator. Jarakaitk arevelian, 65. Avtaliantz, John, baron: Authors of Armenian grammars, 48. Covenant of Ali, 22. Memoir of Hindu colony in ancient Armenia, 22. Memoir of life and writings of St. Nierses Clajensis, 58. Note on origin of Armenian era, 22. On invention of Armenian alphabet, 48. On laws and law-books of Armenians, 45. Short memoir of Mechithar Ghosh, 41. Singular narrative of Armenian king Arsaces, 22. Ayvazian Hovhannes, 20. Azad, 7. Azhderian, Antranig. Turk and land of Haig, 8. Azk, 7. B B., E. Armenian wedding, 42. Bachmann, Walter. Kirchen und Moscheen in Armenien, 18. Baker, G. P. Ascent of Ararat, 8. Banaser, 7. Banks, E. J. To summit of Mount Ararat, 8. Banse, Ewald. Die Tuerkei, 8. Barby, Henry. Au pays de l'epouvante, l'Armenie martyre, 37. Barkley, H. C. Ride through Asia Minor and Armenia, 42. Baronian, H. H. Maitre Balthasar, 60. Barre, Andre. L'esclavage blanc (Armenie et Macedoine), 73. Barres, Maurice. Tigran Yergat, 41. Barrileah, A. H. Ara keghetsig badmagan vibasanoutiun, 60. Barton, J. L.: Armenian qualifications for success, 42. Daybreak in Turkey, 8. Euphrates College, 72. What America has done for Armenians, 72. Who are Armenians? 8. Basil. Oraison funebre de Baudouin, 63. Basmadjian, K. J.: Armenia, home of Grecian architecture, 20. Histoire moderne des Armeniens, 22. Leon VI, 30. Les livres de medecine chez les Armeniens, 45. Les Lusignans, 22. Note on Van inscriptions, 53. Une nouvelle inscription armeniaque, 53. Une nouvelle inscription vannique, 53. La plus ancienne inscription armenienne, 53. La presse armenienne, 5. Quelles etaient les frontieres de l'Armenie ancienne?, 8. Quelques observations sur l'inscription de Kelischin, 53. Souvenir d'Ani. 8. La stele de Zouarthnotz, 53. Survey of ancient Armenian history, 22. Baumgartner, Adolf. Ueber das Buch "die Chrie," 48. Baumstark, Anton. Die christlichen Literaturen des Orients, 56. Bayan, G. Armenian proverbs, 63. Baynes, N. H. Rome and Armenia, 22. Bedickian, S. V. How Armenians keep New Year and Christmas, 42. Bedikian, D. M. Armenian-American and question of immigration, 78. Bedrossian, Matthias. New dictionary Armenian-English, 48. Belck, Waldemar: Archaeologische Forschungen in Armenien, 18. Armenien im Altertum, 18. Armenische Expedition, 18. Aus den Berichten ueber die armenische Expedition, 18. Beitraege zur alten Geographie, 8. Eine in Russisch-Armenien neu aufgefundene, wichtige chaldische Inschrift, 53. Die Keil-Inschriften in der Tigris-Quellgrotte, 53. Die Kelischin-Stele, 53. Mittheilungen ueber armenische Streitfragen, 53. Das Reich der Mannaeer, 18. Die Rusas-Stele von Topsanae, 18. Die Steleninschrift Rusas' II, 55. Untersuchungen und Reisen in Transkaukasien, 18. Belck, Waldemar, and F. F. K. Lehmann-Haupt: Bericht ueber die armenische Forschungsreise, 18. Bericht ueber eine Forschungsreise durch Armenien, 18. Chaldische Forschungen, 53. Inuspuas, Sohn des Menuas, 53. Mittheilung ueber weitere Ergebnisse ihrer Studien an den neugefundenen armenischen Keilinschriften, 53. Ein neuer Herrscher von Chaldia, 53. Reisebriefe von der armenischen Expedition, 18. Ueber die Kelishin-Stelen, 53. Ueber neuerlich aufgefundene Keilinschriften in russisch und tuerkisch Armenien, 53. Vorlaeufiger Bericht ueber die im Jahre 1898 erzielten Ergebnisse einer Forschungsreise durch Armenien, 18. Weiterer Bericht ueber die armenische Expedition, 18. Zu Jensen's Bemerkungen betreffs der Sitze der Chalder, 54. Zweiter Vorbericht ueber eine Forschungsreise in Armenien, 18. Belin, F. A. Extrait du journal d'un voyage de Paris a Erzeroum, 8. Bell, M. S. Around and about Armenia, 8. Bellaud. Essai sur la langue armenienne, 48. Benjamin, S. G. W. Armenians and Porte, 73. Benoit, Lucien. Les massacres d'Adana, 37. Benson, E. F. Crescent and iron cross, 73. Bent, J. T.: Notes on Armenians in Asia Minor, 78. Travels amongst Armenians, 8. Berberov, R.: Die Armenier, 22. Polozheniye armyan v Rossii, 78. Bertin, George. Abridged grammars of languages of cuneiform inscriptions, 53. Beshgeturian, Azniv. Arachnort Anklierin lezvin, 48. Beshigtashlian, Megerdich. Kertouadzner ou jarer, 57. Bibliotheca Hagiographica Orientalis, 5. Bibliotheque nationale, Paris. Catalogue des manuscrits armeniens, 5. Bicknell, E. P. Red Cross and Red Crescent, 23. Bierbaum, P. W. Streifzuege im Kaukasus und in Hocharmenien, 8. Binder, Henry. Au Kurdistan, 8. Bischoff, Ferdinand: Das alte Recht der Armenier in Lemberg, 45. Urkunden zur Geschichte der Armenier in Lemberg, 79. Bishop, I. L. B. Shadow of Kurd, 73. Bittner, Maximilian. Der vom Himmel gefallene Brief Christi, 63. Black, G. F. Gypsies of Armenia, 8. Blackwell, A. S.: Armenian poems, 57. Armenian poet: Siamanto, 59. Armenian virtues, 42. Battle of Avarair, 23. Bibliography, 5. Progress in Armenian Church, 68. Blau, Otto: Ueber-karta, -kerta in Ortsnamen, 48. Vom Urumia-See nach dem Van-See, 8. Bliss, E. M.: Armenia, 8. Turkey and Armenian atrocities, 37. Turkey and Armenian atrocities; a reign of terror, 37. Bluhm, Julius. Routen im tuerkischen Armenien, 8. Blunt, W. S. Turkish misgovernment, 73. Bodleian Library, Oxford University. Catalogue of Armenian mss., 5. Bogdanov, Artemy. Memoirs of life of Artemi, 23. Bolton, H. C. Armenian folklore, 44. Bonney, T. G. Notes on some rocks from Ararat, 46. Bore, Eugene: Armenie, 8. De l'Armenie, 68. Elegie sur la prise de Constantinople, 57. Bourgeois, H. La grammaire armenienne de Denis de Thrace, 49. Bowles, T. G. Cyprus convention, 73. Boyajian, Z. C.: Armenian legends and poems, 20, 57. Raffi, 61. Brant, James: Journey through part of Armenia, 8. Notes of journey through part of Kurdistan, 8. Bratter, C. A. Die armenische Frage, 73. Bresnitz von Sydacoff, P. F. Abdul Hamid und die Christenverfolgungen in der Tuerkei, 37. Brezol, Georges. Les Turcs ont passe la, 37. British Museum.--Department of Oriental Printed Books and Mss. Catalogue of Armenian mss., 5. Brockelmann, Karl: Ein assyrisches Lehnwort im Armenischen, 48. Die griechischen Fremdwoerter im Armenischen, 48. Ein syrischer Text in armenischer Umschrift, 48. Brockelmann, Karl, and others. Geschichte des christlichen Litteraturen des Orients, 56. Brosset, M. F.: Activite litteraire des Georgiens et des Armeniens, 5. Analyse critique de la Vseobshchaya istoriya de Vardan, 41. De quelques inscriptions armeniennes, 53. Des historiens armeniens, 23. Details sur le droit public armenien, 45. Etudes sur l'historien armenien Mkhithar, 23. Etudes sur l'historien armenien Oukhtanes, 23. Examen critique de quelques passages de la Description de la Grande-Armenie, 8. Examen d'un passage de l'historien armenien Oukhtanes, 23. Explication de diverses inscriptions georgiennes, armeniennes et grecques, 53. Extrait du manuscrit armenien ... relatif au calendrier georgien, 63. Listes chronologiques des princes et metropolites de la Siounie, 23. Monographie des monnaies armeniennes, 20. Note sur les inscriptions armeniennes de Bolghari, 53. Note sur le village armenien d'Acorhi, 9. Notice historique sur les couvents armeniens de Haghbat et de Sanahin, 68. Notice des manuscrits armeniens, 23. Notice sur le couvent armenien de Ketcharhous, 68. Notice sur le diacre armenien Zakaria Ghabonts, 41. Notice sur Edchmiadzin, 9. Notice sur l'historien armenien Thoma Ardzrouni, 23. Notice sur un manuscrit armenien, 45. Notice sur la plus ancienne inscription armenienne connue, 53. Le pretendu masque de fer armenien, 41. Projet d'une collection d'historiens armeniens inedits, 23. Rapport sur diverses inscriptions, 54. Rapport ... sur un manuscrit armenien, 64. Rapport sur la 2de partie du voyage du P. Sargis Dchalaliants, 9. Rapports sur un voyage archeologique dans la Georgie et dans l'Armenie, 9. Revue de la litterature historique de l'Armenie, 23. Samouel d'Ani, 34. Sur les couvents armeniens d'Haghbat et de Sanahin, 68. Sur deux redactions armeniennes ... de la legende des saints Baralam-Varlaam et Ioasaph-Iosaphat, 63. Sur l'histoire ancienne de l'Armenie, 23. Sur l'histoire composee ... par Thoma Ardzrouni, 23. Varietes armeniennes, 48. Brosset, M. F., and P. A. Jaubert. Description des principaux fleuves de la Grande-Armenie, 9. Brosset, M. F., and E. Kunik. Notice sur deux inscriptions cuneiformes, 54. Broussali, Jean. L'Armenie, 9. Browne, J. G. Tartars and Armenians, 23. Brunhes, Jean. Le role ancien de l'Armenie, 23. Bryce (1. viscount), James Bryce: Armenian massacres, 37. Armenian question, 73. Die armenische Frage, 74. Ascent of Ararat, 9. Future of Armenia, 74. Future of Asiatic Turkey, 74. On Armenia, 9. Transcaucasia and Ararat, 9, 74. Budushcheye ustroistvo Armenii, 23. Bugge, Sophus: Beitraege zur etymologischen Erlaeuterung der armenischen Sprache, 48. Etruskisch und Armenisch, 48. Buhse. Vorlaeufiger botanischer Bericht ueber meine Reise durch einen Theil Armeniens, 46. Bunyan, John. Krisdianosin ou Krisdinein jamportoutiuni, 65. Burchardi, Gustav: Raffi, 61. Der Zweifel und das Boese, 24. Burgin, G. B. Armenian at home, 42. Buss, Kate. Archag Tchobanian, 59. Buxton, Harold. Side-lights on Armenian question, 74. Buxton, Noel. Russians in Armenia, 74. Buxton, Noel, and Harold Buxton. Travel and politics in Armenia, 9, 24. Byron (6. baron), G. G. N. Byron. Lord Byron's Armenian exercises and poetry, 48. C C., E. Armenian folk songs, 44. Calfa, Ambroise. Dictionnaire armenien-francais, 49. Calfa, Corene. Arschag II, 60. Cappelletti, Giuseppe. L'Armenia, 24. Carlier, Emilie: Au milieu des massacres, 37. En Armenie, 24. Carriere, Auguste: Inscriptions d'un reliquaire armenien, 54. La legende d'Abgar, 31. La rose d'or, 30. Un version armenienne de l'histoire d'Asseneth, 63. Cavendish, L. C. F., lady. Peril of Armenia, 74. Cayol, Henri. Litterature armenienne, 56. Chahan de Cirbied, Jacques: Details sur la situation actuelle du royaume de Perse, 24. Grammaire de la langue armenienne, 49. Memoire sur le gouvernement ... des anciens Armeniens, 24. Chakijian, Ephrem. Badmoutiun hahots, 24. Chakmakjian, H. H.: Armenia's place, 24. Armeno-American letter writer, 49. Badmoutiun hahots, 24. Chalatianz, Bagrat. Die armenische Literatur des 19. Jahrhunderts, 56. Chambers, L. P. Massacre of Armenia, 37. Chamchian, Michael: Badmoutiun hahots, 24. History of Armenia, 24. Chanazarian, G. V. La litterature armenienne, 56. Chant populaire sur la captivite de Leon, 58. Chantre, B. A travers l'Armenie russe, 9. Chantre, Ernest: L'Ararat, 9. Les Armeniens, 24. De Beyrouth a Tiflis, 9. Mission scientifique dans la haute Mesopotamie, 9. Premiers apercus sur les peuples de l'Armenie russe, 9. Rapport sur une mission scientifique dans l'Asie occidentale, 9. Chantres. Reisen am Ararat, 9. Charmetant, Felix. Das sterbende Armenien und das christliche Europa, 74. Charpentier, Jarl. Kleine Beitraege zur armenischen Wortkunde, 49. Chesney, F. R. Russo-Turkish campaigns of 1828 and 1829, 24. Chesney, G. M. Winter campaign in Armenia, 24. Chikhachov, P. A.: Asie Mineure, 9, 46. Reisen in Kleinasien und Armenien, 9. Sur l'orographie et la constitution geologique de quelques parties de l'Asie Mineure et de l'Armenie, 46. Childs, W. J. Across Asia Minor, 9. Chirol, Sir Valentine. A great Armenian [Nubar Pasha], 41. Chirvanzade, pseud. of Alexandre Movissian. La possedee, 60. Chopin, J. De l'origine des peuples habitant la province d'Armenie, 9. Ciakciak, Emmanuele. Dizionario italiano-armeno-turco, 49. Cilicia, 7. Clark, William. Armenian history, 24. Clinch, B. J. Christians under Turkish rule, 74. Collet, C. D. New crusade against Turk, 74. Collins, F. B., translator: Armenian folk-tales, 44. Vacant yard, 60. Compendiose notizie sulla congregazione de monaci armeni Mechitaristi, 72. Condition of Armenia, 9. Cons, Emma. Armenian exiles in Cyprus, 79. Constantinople massacre, 37. Constitution nationale des Armeniens, 24. Contenson, Ludovic, baron de: Les Armeniens du Caucase, 79. Movement for Armenian emancipation, 74. La question armenienne, 74. Les reformes en Turquie d'Asie, 74. Contes & chants armeniens, 58. Conybeare, F. C.: Armenia and Armenians, 10. Barlaam and Josaphat legend, 63. Collation with ancient Armenian versions of Greek text of Aristotle's Categories, 65. Collation of old Armenian version of Plato's laws, 65. On ancient Armenian version of Plato, 65. On old Armenian version of Plato's Apology, 65. On old Armenian version of Plato's laws, 65. Conybeare, F. C., and others. Story of Ahikar, 63. Coulon, Henri: L'art et l'Armenie, 20. L'heroisme des Armeniens, 74. Cradle of history, 24. Creagh, James. Armenians, Koords and Turks, 10. Cuinet, Vital. La Turquie d'Asie, 10. Cumont, Franz, and Eugene Cumont. Voyage d'exploration archeologique dans le Pont et la Petite Armenie, 18. Curtis, W. E. Around Black Sea, 10. D Dadian, Boghos. L'eglise d'Armenie, 68. Dadian, M. B. La societe armenienne contemporaine, 42. Daghbaschean, H. Gruendung des Bagratidenreiches, 24. Dale, Darley. Armenia and Armenians, 10. Dalyell, R. A. O. Earthquake of Erzerum, 10. Damadian, Mihran: Furfurcar, 58. Ramgavaroutiun, 63. Damas, Andre de. Coup d'oeil sur l'Armenie, 10. Dan, Demeter. Glaube und Gebraeuche der Armenier bei der Geburt, Hochzeit und Beerdigung, 42. Dante Alighieri. Asdouadzahin gadagirkoutiun, 66. Dashian, Hagopos, vartabed: Vartabedutune arakelotz anvaveragan ganonatz madiane, 63. Zur Abgar-Sage, 63. Davey, Richard: Sultan and his subjects, 10. Turkey and Armenia, 10. Davoud Zadour de Melik Schahnazar. Notices sur l'etat actuel de la Perse, en persan, en armenien et en francais, 40. Day of peril of Armenian Church, 68. De Kay, Charles. Suppression of faith, 68. Delatre, Louis. Place de l'armenien parmi les langues indo-europeennes, 49. Denis of Thrace. Grammaire ... en grec, en armenien et en francais, 49. Der-Hagopian, Nishan: Persecuted Armenia, 37. What of Armenia, 74. Des Coursons, R. de, vicomte. La rebellion armenienne, 24. Desimoni, Cornelio. Actes passes en 1271, 1274 et 1279 a l'Aias, 24. Deutsche morgenlaendische Gesellschaft. Armenisch, 5. Develay, Albert. Autour des lacs de Van et d'Ourmiah, 10. Deyrolle, Theophile. Voyage dans le Lazistan et l'Armenie, 10. Dicey, Edward. Nubar Pasha and our Asian protectorate, 74. Dillon, E. J.: Armenia: an appeal, 74. Armenia and Turk, 74. Condition of Armenia, 74. Fiasco in Armenia, 74. Dingelstedt, V. Armenians, 10. Diplomatische Aktenstuecke zur armenischen Frage, 74. Diran, A. Etchmiadzin, 10. Dirohyan, H. V.: Hamarod tasakirk unthanour badmoutian, 40. Ousoumn pnagan ev pnapanagan kidoutiants, 45. Dirr, A. Praktisches Lehrbuch der ostarmenischen Sprache, 49. Dispersion of Armenian nation, 10. Distribution of Armenian nation, 10. Distribution des prix du College armenien de Paris, 42. Dolens, Noel. Ce que l'on voit en Armenie, 10. Dolens, Noel, and A. Khatch. Histoire des anciens Armeniens, 24. Dominian, Leon. Peoples of Asiatic Turkey, 10. Doumergue, Emile. Ce que la Suisse a fait pour l'Armenie, 74. Dowling, T. E. Armenian church, 68. Dubois de Montpereux, Frederic. Voyage autour du Caucase, 10. Duchesne, L. M. O. L'Armenie chretienne dans l'histoire ecclesiastique d'Eusebe, 68. Dulaurier, Edouard: Les Armeniens en Autriche, en Russie et en Turquie, 42. Les chants populaires, 58. Commerce, tarif des douanes et condition civile des etrangers dans le royaume de la Petite Armenie, 10. Considerations sur les plus anciennes origines de l'histoire armenienne, 24. Cosmogonie des Perses d'apres Eznig, 63. Ethnographie de l'Armenie. 10. Etude sur l'organisation politique, religieuse et administrative du royaume de la Petite-Armenie, 10. Etudes sur les chants historiques, 58. L'histoire des croisades d'apres les chroniques armeniennes, 40. Histoire, dogmes, traditions et liturgie de l'eglise armenienne, 68-69. Litterature armenienne, 25. Les Mongols d'apres les historiens armeniens, 40. Recherches sur la chronologie armenienne, 25. Dwight, H. G. O.: Armenian traditions about Mt. Ararat, 18. Catalogue of all works in Armenian of date earlier than 17th century, 5. Christianity in Turkey, 69. Keraganoutun Ankghiaren yev Haheren, 49. Dwight, H. G. O., and Elias Riggs. Orthography of Armenian and Turkish proper names, 49. Dwight, W. B. American bank notes and Dr. Seropyan, 45. Dzotsikian, S. M.: Arnutiun, 42. Aus ma Ani Kaghakin, 18. Debi Pergutiun, 37. Haigagank, 74. E Eastern question, 74. Ebersolt, Jean. Les anciennes eglises d'Armenie, 69. Ecclesiae Armeniacae Canones selecti, 69. Edschmiatsin, 10. Edwards, B. B. Ascent of Mount Ararat, 10. Egli, Emil. Feldzuege in Armenien, 25. Einstein, L. D.: Armenian massacres, 37. Inside Constantinople, 74. Eliot, Sir C. N. E. Turkey in Europe, 25. Elisha, vartabed: Eliseo, storico armeno del quinto secolo, 25. Histoire de Vartan, 25. History of Vartan, 25. Soulevement national de l'Armenie chretienne, 25. Yeghishei Vartabedi vasn Vartanah, 25. Emerson, Frederick. Mdavor ev kravor touapanoutiun, 66. Emin, J. B. Recherches sur le paganisme armenien, 25. Engelhardt, Edouard: L'Angleterre et la Russie a propos de la question armenienne, 74. L'enquete armenienne, 74. La Turquie et le Tanzimat, 25. England's policy in Turkey, 74. Ephraim the Syrian: Evangelii concordantis expositio, 66. Srpouin Yepremi, 66. Epiphanius of Cyprus. Ekthesiz Protoklesion Patriarchon te kai metropoliton, 69. Eritassard Hayastan, 7. Erk-Ura, 10. Erker ou yeghanagner, 66. Eschavannes, E. d': Les families d'Orient, 25. Les rois d'Armenie au xive siecle, 25. Esoff, G. d'. Apercu de l'etude de la langue armenienne en Europe, 49. Etesioh sosgali tebkl yev oghperkoutiun godoradzin Etesioh, 37. Eusebius Pamphilus, bishop of Caesarea. Eusebii Pamphili Caesariensis episcopi Chronicon, 25. Excursions in Armenia, 10. F Fa'iz al-Husain: L'Armenie martyre, 38. Martyred Armenia, 38. Die Tuerkenherrschaft und Armeniens Schmerzensschrei, 38. Faustus of Byzant. Bibliotheque historique, 25. Fenelon, F. de. Les aventures de Telemaque, 66. Ferriman, Z. D. Young Turks and truth about holocaust at Adana, 38. Filler, Ernst. Quaestiones de Leontii Armenii historia, 25. Finck, F. N.: Katalog der armenischen Handschriften, 5. Kleinere mittelarmenische Texte, 34. Lehrbuch der neuostarmenischen Litteratursprache, 49. Fischer, Hans. Das Kloster des hl. Thaddaeus, 69. Flandin, Eugene: Souvenirs de voyage en Armenie, 10. Ueber Alt- und Neuarmenien, 10. Fonton, Felix. La Russie dans l'Asie-Mineure, 25. Forel, F. A. Les echantillons de limon dragues en 1879 dans les lacs d'Armenie, 46. Fortescue, E. F. K. Armenian Church, 69. Foy, Willy. Zur Xerxes-Inschrift von Van, 54. France.--Direction de Commerce Exterieur. Rapports commerciaux, 43. France.--Ministere des Affaires Etrangeres. Documents diplomatiques, 1897, 25-26. Die Franzoesischen Gelbbuecher ueber Armenien, 26. Freshfield, D. W.: Early ascents of Ararat, 10. Travels in Central Caucasus and Bashan, 10. Fresneaux, Marcel. Trait d'union. Armenie-France, 26. Friederichsen, M. H.: Die Grenzmarken des europaeischen Russlands, 11. Russisch Armenien, 11. Friend of Armenia, 7. Furneaux, Henry. Roman relations with Parthia and Armenia, 26. G Gabrielian, M. C. Armenia, 26. Gabrielian, M. S. Serahin aroghzapanoutiun, 45. Gaghapar, 7. Gaidzakian, Ohan. Illustrated Armenia, 11. Galanus, Clemens: Conciliationis Ecclesiae Armenae cvm Romana, 69. Historia Armena, 26. Gallaudet, T. H. Abashkharatsvits, 66. Gardthausen, V. Ueber den griechischen Ursprung der armenischen Schrift, 49. Garnett, L. M. J.: Armenian wedding, 42. Women of Turkey, 42. Garo, Chahen. Modern Armenian literature, 56. Gatteyrias, J. A.: L'Armenie et les Armeniens, 11. Elegie sur les malheurs de l'Armenie, 26. Gauthiot, Robert. Note sur l'accent secondaire en armenien, 49. Geffcken, F. H. Turkish reforms and Armenia, 74. Gegharvest, 7, 20. Gelzer, Heinrich: Die Anfaenge der armenischen Kirche, 69. Armenien, 69. Zur armenischen Goetterlehre, 44. Georgius, Pisida. Vetsoreahk Keorkah Bisiteah, 66. Germany, Turkey, and Armenia, 38. Ghambashidze, D. Georgia and Armenia as allies, 26. Ghazarian, Mkrtitsch. Armenien unter der arabischen Herrschaft, 26. Ghevont, vartabed. Histoire des guerres et des conquetes des Arabes en Armenie, 26. Ghisleri, Arcangelo. L'Armenia e gli Armeni, 11. Ghulam-us-Saqlain. Mussalmans of India and Armenian question, 74. Gibbons, H. A.: Blackest page of modern history, 38. "La page la plus noire de l'histoire moderne," 38. Gibbons, H. D.: Red rugs of Tarsus, 38. Les Turcs ont passe par la! 38. Gildemeister, Johann. Pseudokallisthenes, 31. Gjandschezian, Esnik. Beitraege zur altarmenischen nominalen Stammbildungslehre, 49. Gladstone, W. E. Mr. Gladstone on Armenian question, 75. Gleye, Arthur. Ugro-finnischer Einfluss im Armenischen, 49. Gobat, Albert. Protection of Armenians, 75. Goehlert, Vinzent. Die Armenier in Europa und insbesondere in Oesterreich-Ungarn, 79. Gooch, G. P. Who are Armenians? 11. Gotchnag, 7. Grabowsky, Adolf. Die armenische Frage, 75. Graves, J. T. Armenian nation, 11. Gray, L. H. On certain Persian and Armenian month-names, 49. Great Britain.--Foreign Office: Diplomatic and consular reports. Annual series. Report on trade, 43. Miscellaneous no. 31 (1916). Treatment of Armenians, 38. Turkey. 1895, no. 1. Correspondence relating to Asiatic provinces of Turkey, 38. Turkey. 1896, no. 2. Correspondence relative to Armenian question, 75. [Various documents relating to the Armenians], 26-27. Greene, F. D.: Armenian crisis in Turkey, 38. Armenian massacres, 38. Rule of Turk, 38. Greene, F. V. Russian army and its campaigns in Turkey, 27. Greene, J. K. Leavening the Levant, 72. Gregory, D. S. Armenians in eastern question, 38. Gregory of Armenia, called Illuminator. Die Akten, 63. Gregory of Bysantium, metropolitan of Chios. Yearnings after unity in East, 69. Gregory Dgha, patriarch of Armenia. Elegie, 58. Gregory Magistros: Ein Brief des Gregor Magistros an den Emir Ibrahim, 63. Ein Brief des Gregor Magistros an den Patriarchen Petros, 63. Gregory of Nazianzen. (Nonnos.) Die Scholien zu fuenf Reden des Gregor, 63. Gregory the Priest. Chronique, 27. Griselle, Eugene. Une victime du pangermanisme, 38. Grothe, Hugo. Der russisch-tuerkische Kriegsschauplatz, 11. Guinness, Walter. Impressions of Armenia, 11. Guiragos of Kantzag. Extrait de l'Histoire d'Armenie, 27. Gulesian, M. H.: Armenian refugees, 79. England's hand in Turkish massacres, 75. Gulian, K. H. Elementary modern Armenian grammar, 49. Guthe, H. Mosaiken mit armenischer Inschrift, 54. Guyard, Stanislas: Etudes vanniques, 54. Les inscriptions de Van, 54. Inscriptions de Van, les estampages de M. Deyrolle, 54. Note sur quatre mots des inscriptions de Van, 54. Note sur quelques particularites des inscriptions de Van, 54. Note sur quelques passages des inscriptions de Van, 54. Gylling, Hjalmar. Notes on microscopical structure of some eruptive rocks from Armenia, 46. H Hacobian, A. P. Armenia and war, 27. Hagopian, Hovhan: Pocket dictionary, 49. Relations of Armenians and Franks, 27. Russification of Armenians, 27. Haigazn, Edouard. Legendes et superstitions de l'Armenie, 44. Haik, 7. Hairenik, 7. Hamarod zhamakirk Hahasdaneahts sa Yegeghetsuoh, 69. Hamilton, W. J.: Extracts from notes made on journey in Asia Minor, 11. Researches in Asia Minor, Pontus and Armenia, 11. Hamlin, Cyrus: Genesis and evolution of Turkish massacre, 38. Martyrdom of Armenia, 38. Hampartsoumian, H. A. Arouyesd madaharoutian, 45. Handbook for travellers in Asia Minor, 11. Hanusz, Johann. Beitraege zur armenischen Dialectologie, 49. Harnack, Adolf. Forschungen auf dem Gebiete der alten grusinischen und armenischen Litteratur, 56. Haroutiunian, Hovhannes. "Vor megoun yedeven," 60. Harris, J. R. Notes from Armenia, 44. Harris, J. R., and H. B. Harris: Briefe von Schauplatz der letzten Massacres in Armenien, 39. Letters from scenes of recent massacres, 39. Harris, W. B. Unbiassed view of Armenian question, 75. Hart, A. B. Free Armenia, 75. Hauff, Wilhelm. Badouoh Yediuen gam Likhtunshtain, 66. Havemeyer, J. C. Relation of United States to Armenia, 75. Haweis, H. R. Persian on Armenian massacres, 75. Hayrig, Chrimian. Soldier's lament, 58. Henderson, B. W. Chronology of wars in Armenia, 27. Henry, J. D. Baku, 27. Hepworth, G. H. Through Armenia, 11. Herold, A. F. L'amitie de la France et de l'Armenie, 27. Herrick, G. F. Armenians and American interests under Russia, 75. Hethoum, prince of Gorigos: Chronographie, 27. Histoire orientale, 28. Historia orientalis, 28. Historie of Ayton, 28. Relation de Hayton, 28. Table chronologique, 28. Hethoum II, king of Armenia. Poeme, 58. Heyfelder, O. Die Armenier und ihre Zukunft, 75. Hin havadk gam hetanosagan gronk Hahots, 18. Hincks, Edward. On inscriptions at Van, 54. Histoire de Pharmani Asman, 63. Hittite--Armenian? 18. Hoberg, Otto. Die armenische Frage und der Weltkrieg, 75. Hodgetts, E. A. B. Round about Armenia, 11. Hoffmeister, E. von. Durch Armenien, 11. Holynski, A. J. J. Nubar Pacha devant l'histoire, 41. Homer. Iliagan, 66. Hommaire de Hell, Adele. Les Armeniennes a Constantinople, 11. Horace. Arvesd kertoghagan, 66. Houghton, L. S. Armenian uprising, 75. How to save alive orphan children of martyrs, 75. Howard, Mary. Worst sufferer of war, 75. Howard. W. W. Horrors of Armenia. 39. Howel, Thomas. Journal of passage from India ... through Armenia, 11. Hrasdan, Saven. Sind die Armenier kriegerischen Geistes bar? 28. Hubboff, prince. Genealogical catalogue of kings of Armenia, 28. Huebschmann, Heinrich: Die altarmenischen Ortsnamen, 11. Armeniaca, 49-50. Armenische Grammatik, 50. Iranisch-armenische Namen auf karta, kert, gird, 50. Die semitischen Lehnwoerter im Altarmenischen, 50. Ueber Aussprache und Umschreibung des Altarmenischen, 50. Ueber die Stellung des Armenischen im Kreise der indogermanischen Sprachen, 50. Huet G. Les contes populaires d'Armenie, 44. Hughes, T. McK. Notes on some volcanic phenomena in Armenia, 46. Hugo, Victor. Innsoun yerek, 66. Huntington, Ellsworth: Mittheilungen aus englischen Briefen ... ueber armenische Alterthuemer, 18. Through great canon of Euphrates river, 11. Weitere Berichte ueber Forschungen in Armenien, 19. Hyvernat, Henry. Armenia, 11. I Imprimerie armenienne de Saint-Lazare: Catalogue des livres, 5. Tzoutzag krots, 6. In Tuerkisch-Armenien, 11. Ingersoll, R. G. Inch e gronu, 66. Injijian, Ghougas: Description du Bosphore, 64. Hnakhosoutiun, 19, 28. Nachrichten ueber den Thrazischen Bosporus, 64. Villeggiature de' Bizantini sul Bosforo, 64. Institut de France.--Academie des inscriptions et belles-lettres. Recueil des historiens des croisades. Documents armeniens, 28. International Bible Students Association. Scenario of photo-drama of creation, 66. Irenaeus, bishop of Lyons: Armenische Irenaeusfragmente, 66. Des Heiligen Irenaeus Schrift zum Erweise der apostolischen Verkuendigung, 66. Isaverdentz, Hagopos: Easy method of learning English, 50. Histoire de l'Armenie, 28. Ischchanian, B. Die armenische Bevoelkerung in der Tuerkei. 11. Ismail Kemal, bey. Armenia and Armenians, 75. J Jaubert, P. A. Voyage en Armenie, 11. Jean VI, patriarch of Armenia. Histoire d'Armenie, 28. Jean Ouosk'herdjan. Memoire, 28. Jenkins, H. D. Armenia and Armenians, 12. Jensen, Peter: Hittiter und Armenier. 19. Die hittitisch-armenische Inschrift, 54. Die Sitze der "Urarto-Chalder" zur Zeit Tiglatpileser's I, 54. Joannissiany, Abgar: Armenische Sprichwoerter, 64. Sprichwoerter, 64. Johansson, K. F. Om de nyaste upptaeckterna i Armenien, 12. John of Crimea. Description des monasteres armeniens d'Haghbat, 12. Junker, Heinrich. Zur Flexion der altarmenischen Demonstrativa, 50. K K armyanskomu voprosu v Turtzii, 75. Kachouni, M. V.: Arouisdapanoutiun gam shdimaran kidiliats, 46. Bardizbanoutiun, 43. Bdghapanoutiun, 43. Gatnapanoutiun, 43. Meghouapoudzoutiun, 43. Kachouni, Manouele. Hnakhosoutiun Hahasdani, 19, 28. Kalemkiar, Gregoris: Die siebente Vision Daniels, 64. Eine Skizze der literarisch-typographischen Thaetigkeit der Mechitharisten-Congregation in Wien, 6, 72. Kalenderian, V. H. Armenians as soldiers, 28. Karamianz, N.: Einundzwanzig Buchstaben eines verlorenen Alphabets, 50. Verzeichniss der armenischen Handschriften der Koeniglichen Bibliothek, 6. Karekin, Paul. Bibliographie armenienne, 6. Karst, Josef: Armenisches Rechtsbuch, 45. Aussprache und Vokalismus des Kilikisch-Armenischen, 50. Beruehrungspunkte in der Pluralbildung, 50. Historische Grammatik des Kilikisch-Armenischen, 50. Das trilingue Medizinalglossar aus Ms., 310, 50. Kassabian, Dr. Mihran K., 41. Katchoony, H. To martyrs of Adana, 58. Kelekian, Diran. La Turquie et son souverain, 75. Kennedy, J. Indians in Armenia. 29. Kent, W. H. Ancient church of Armenia, 69. Keworkian, Komitas. Armeniens volkstuemliche Reigentaenze, 42. Key of truth, 64. Khakhanof, Alexandre. La situation des Armeniens dans le royaume de Georgie, 79. Khalathianz, Bagrat: Die armenische Heldensage, 64. Ueber den Ursprung der armenischen Fuerstentuemer, 29. Der Ursprung der armenischen Fuerstentuemer, 29. Khalathianz, G. A.: Armyanskii epos v Istorii Armenii Moiseya Khorenskago, 31. Fragmente iranischer Sagen, 63. Maerchen und Sagen, 61. Nachalo kriticheskavo izucheniya istorii Armenii Moiseya Khorenskago, 32. Ueber die armenische Version der Weltchronik des Hippolytus, 40. War Artasches von Armenien der Besieger des Kroesus? 29. Zur Erklaerung der armenischen Geschichte des Moses von Chorene, 32. Khalil Khalid Efendi. Armenian question, 75. Khaniji, Anton. Mukhtasar tawarikh al-Arman, 29. Khanikof, N. Voyage a Ani, 19. Kharajian, H. A. Regional geology and mining of Armenia, 47. Khrimean, Mekertich. Meeting of kings, 58. Khungian, T. B.: Glimpses from ancient Armenia, 29. Massacres in Turkey, 39. Kiepert, Heinrich: Ueber aelteste Landes- und Volksgeschichte von Armenien, 29. Ueber die Lage der armenischen Hauptstadt Tigranokerta, 12. Kinneir, J. M.: Armenia, 12. Journey through Asia Minor, Armenia and Koordistan, 12. Klaproth, J. H.: Apercu des entreprises des Mongols en Georgie et en Armenie, 29. Description de l'Armenie russe, 12. Extrait du Derbend-nameh, 29. Opisaniye Rossiskoi Armenii, 12. Klidschian, Arsen. Das armenische Eherecht, 45. Knapp, G. H. Mission at Van, 72. Kohler, Charles. Lettres pontificales concernant l'histoire de la Petite Armenie, 29. Kolenati, F. A. Reiseerinnerungen, 12. Koran. Mouhammed. Kouran, 66. Kotschy, Theodor. Neue Reise nach Klein-Asien, 12. Kourghinian, Shoushanik. Eagle's love, 58. Koutchak, Nahabed. Vieux chants armeniens, 58. Kovalevski, Maksim. Armyanski vopros, 75. Kraelitz-Greifenhorst, F. von: Sprachprobe eines armenisch-tatarischen Dialektes in Polen, 50. Studien zum Armenisch-Tuerkischen, 50. Krahmer, D. Die altarmenische Hauptstadt Ani, 19. Ksan gakhaghannir, 39. Kurkjian, V. M.: Armenian Benevolent Union, 42. Armenian kingdom of Cilicia, 29. L L., J. L'Armenie et les Armeniens, 12. Lagarde, P. A. de: Armenische Studien, 50. Erlaeuterungen zu Agathangelus, 21. Vergleichung der armenischen Consonanten mit denen des Sanskrit, 50. Vita Gregorii Armeni, 63. Lagov, N. M., compiler. Armeniya, 29. Lalayantz, Erwand: Les anciens chants historiques et les traditions populaires, 58. Legendes et superstitions de l'Armenie, 44. Langlois, Victor: Collection des historiens anciens et modernes de l'Armenie, 29. La congregation mekhitariste, 72. Considerations sur les rapports de l'Armenie avec la France, 29. Documents pour servir a une sigillographie des rois d'Armenie, 29. Du commerce, de l'industrie et de l'agriculture de la Karamanie, 43. Etude sur les sources de l'histoire d'Armenie, 32. Une fete a la cour de Leon II, 29. Fragment d'un voyage en Cilicie, 19. Inscriptions grecques, romaines, byzantines et armeniennes de la Cilicie, 54. Les journaux chez les Armeniens, 6. Lettre a Monsieur ... Brosset, sur quelques points d'histoire politique, 29. Lettre a M. Brosset, sur la succession des rois d'Armenie, 29. Lettre a M. Ch. Lenormant, 20. Memoire sur les archives du Catholicosat armenien de Sis, 69. Memoire sur les origines de la culture des lettres en Armenie, 50. Memoire sur la vie et les ecrits du prince Gregoire Magistros, 63. Les monuments de la Cilicie, 19. Note sur l'inscription armenienne d'un belier sepulcral a Djoulfa, 54. Notice sur le chrysobulle, 30. Numismatique de l'Armenie, 20. Numismatique de l'Armenie au moyen age, 20. Place de l'Armenie dans l'histoire, 29. Les populations armeniennes independantes du mont Taurus, 12. Rapport sur l'exploration archeologique de la Cilicie, 19. Les ruines de Lampron, 19. Voyage dans la Cilicie, 12. Voyage a Sis, 12. Lanin, E. B. Armenia and Armenian people, 12. Layard, Sir A. H. Discoveries in ruins of Nineveh and Babylon; with travels in Armenia, 12. Lazar of Pharbe. Histoire d'Armenie, 29. Leart, Marcel: History of Armenian question, 75. La question armenienne, 75. Lecarpentier, G. La nouvelle question d'Armenie, 75. Lehmann-Haupt, F. F. K.: Armenien, 12. Bericht ueber die Ergebnisse der von W. Belck und C. F. Lehmann ... ausgefuehrten Forschungsreise in Armenien, 54. Bericht ueber den von ihm erledigten Abschnitt der armenischen Expedition, 19. "Chaldisch" und "Armenisch," 54. Chaldische Nova, 54. Die Einwanderung der Armenier, 30. Entgegnung auf Hrn. Belck's Einsendung "ueber die Keil-Inschriften der Tigris-Grotte," 54. Materialien zur aelteren Geschichte Armeniens, 30. Eine neue Ausgabe der auf russischem Gebiet gefundenen chaldischen Keilinschriften, 54. Neugefundene Menuas-Inschriften, 54. Die neugefundene Steleninschrift Rusas' II, 54. Religionsgeschichtliches aus Kaukasien und Armenien, 30, 44. Ein Schlusswort, 55. Der Tigris-Tunnel, 55. Von der deutschen armenischen Expedition, 19. Vorschlaege zur Sammlung der lebenden armenischen Dialekte, 50. Weiterer Bericht ueber den Fortgang der armenischen Expedition, 19. Zwei unveroeffentlichte chaldische Inschriften, 55. Zwei unveroeffentlichte Keilschrifttexte, 55. Leist, Arthur: Gabriel Sundukianz, 62. Die Kongregation der Mechitaristen, 72. Litterarische Skizzen, 64. Mkrtitsch Beschiktaschlian, 57. Pater Leo Alischan, 57. Raphael Patkanian, 61. Lenormant, Francois. Sur l'ethnographie et l'histoire de l'Armenie, 30. Leon III, king of Armenia. Decret ou privilege ... en faveur des Genois, 30. Leon VI, king of Armenia. [History of and articles on], 30. Lerch, P. Ueber eine armenische Bearbeitung der "sieben weisen Meister," 66. Leroy-Beaulieu, Anatole. Les Armeniens et la question armenienne, 75. Levine, I. D. Armenia resurrected, 75. Liden, Evald. Armenische Studien, 50. Little, E. C. Armenia and Turkey, 75. Loftus, W. K. On geology of portions of Turko-Persian frontier, 47. Lohmann, Ernst. Im Kloster zu Sis, 30. Longuinoff, D. Ascension de l'Ararat, 12. Lord Rosebery's second thoughts, 75. Lusignan, Guy de. Nouveau dictionnaire illustre francais-armenien, 50. Lynch, H. F. B.: Armenia, 12. Armenian question, 76. Armenian question: Europe or Russia? 76. Ascent of Mount Ararat, 13. Bibliography, 6. M McCoan, J. C. Our new protectorate, 13. MacColl, Malcolm: Armenia and Transvaal, 30. Constantinople massacre, 39. Malcolm MacColl; memoirs and correspondence, 39. McDermot, George. Great assassin and Christians of Armenia, 76. Macfarlane. Moeurs armeniennes, 42. MacGregor, John. Turkish Armenia, 43. McGregor, P. J. C. Notes on birds observed at Erzerum, 47. Macler, Frederic: Les Armeniens en Turquie, 30. Autour de l'Armenie, 76. Autour de la Cilicie, 13. Beginnings of Armenian movement, 76. La chaire d'armenien, 56. Contes armeniens, 61. Contes et legendes, 61. Un document armenien, 64. Indications bibliographiques, 6. Miniatures armeniennes, 21. Mosaique orientale, 55. Notices de manuscrits armeniens, 6. Notre-Dame de Bitlis, 64. Pseudo-Sebeos, 30. Rapport sur une mission scientifique en Armenie, 6, 30. Russia and Armenians, 30. Maghak-Teopileantz, M. V. Gensakroutiun yereveli arants, 41. Mahdesian, Arshag. Armenia, 76. Maksimov, S. V. Armyanski narod, 13. Malcolm, J. A.: Armenian's cry for Armenia, 76. Cry for Armenia, 76. Mangasarian, M. M.: Armenia and Turkey, 76. Armenia's impending doom, 76. Mangouni, N. Hatsi Hamar, 61. Manifestations franco-anglo-italiennes, 76. Marbeau, Edouard. L'Armenie et l'opinion publique, 76. Marcar, Samuel. Description of copper coin of Leo, 20. Margoliouth, D. S. Syro-Armenian dialect, 50. Maribas the Chaldean. Extraits de la Chronique, 30. Markoff, A. V. Russian Armenia, 13. Markoff, E. Eine Besteigung des grossen Ararat, 13. Marquart, Josef. Eransahr nach der Geographie des Ps. Moses Xorenac'i, 13. Marr, N.: Kavkazskii kulturnyi mir i Armeniya, 30. Sbornik pritch Vardana, materialy dlya istorii srednevyekovoi Armyanskoi literatury, 61. Marshall, A. C.: Armenian embroideries, 21. Armenians in America, 79. Arshag Tchobanian, 59. Minas Tcheraz, 62. Visit to Armenian church and to Ter-Maroukian's studio, 79. Martens, E. v. Aufzaehlung der von Dr. A. Brandt in Russisch-Armenien gesammelten Mollusken, 47. Martin, Paulin. Des signes hieroglyphiques dans les manuscrits armeniens, 51. Martiros of Crimea. Liste rimee des souverains de la Petite Armenie, 30. Martyr, bishop of Arzendjan. Relation d'un voyage fait en Europe, 13. Les Massacres d'Armenie, 39. Massacres in Turkey, 39. Matthew of Edessa: Chronique, 31. Extraits de la Chronique, 31. Mauclair, Camille. Vartan Mahokian, 21. Maunsell, F. R. Eastern Turkey, 13. Maxudianz, M. Le parler armenien d'Akn, 51. Mechitharisten-Kongregation in Wien. Huschardzan, 72. Meda, Filippo. La storia documentata delle ultime stragi in Armenia, 39. Meillet, Antoine: De quelques archaismes remarquables de la declinaison armenienne, 51. Notes sur la conjugaison armenienne, 51. Observations sur la graphie de quelques anciens manuscrits de l'Evangile armenien, 51. Recherches sur la syntaxe comparee de l'armenien, 51. Remarques sur la grammaire historique de l'armenien, 50. Remarques sur le texte de l'historien armenien Agathange, 21. Melik, Alexander. Khordagwadz yerginkner, 61. Memoire de la mission d'Erzeron, 69. Menant, Joachim. A travers l'Armenie russe, 13. Menevischean, P. G. Faustus von Byzanz, 25. Mexborough (4. earl), J. C. G. Savile. Notes on journey from Erz-Rum ... to Aleppo, 13. Mexborough (5. earl), J. H. Savile. Half round old world, 13. Meyners d'Estrey, G. H. J., comte. Caucase et Armenie, 76. Michael I, patriarch of Jacobites: Chronique, 31. Extrait de la Chronique, 31. Miller, Miss Frank. Armenian popular songs, 58. Millingen, Frederick. Wild life among Koords, 13. Milton, John. Mildovni Trakhd gorouseal, 67. Minas. Armenian literature, 56. Mirianischvili, Pierre. Sur le rapport mutuel entre le georgien et l'armenien, 51. Missirian, G. M. National churches, 69. Mkhithar. Mechithar's des Meisterarztes aus Her "Trost bei Fiebern," 46. Mkhithar of Dashir. Relation de la conference tenue entre le docteur Mekhithar ... et le legat du pape, 69. Mkhithar Gosh. Choix de fables, 64. Mohammed-bey. Lettre a Victor Langlois sur la legende arabe, 20. Monier. Lettre, 69. Monteith, William: Journal of tour through Azerdbijan, 13. Kars and Erzeroum, 31. Notes sur la position de plusieurs anciennes villes situees dans les plaines d'Ararat, 13. Mordtmann, A. D.: Entzifferung und Erklaerung der armenischen Keilinschriften von Van, 55. Ueber die Keilinschriften von Armenien, 55. Mordtmann, J. H. Armenische Drucke von Smyrna, 6. Morgan, J. J. M. de: Armenia and Europe, 76. Armenian activities, 43. Armenians, 31. L'Armenie instrument de paix mondiale, 76. Les Armeniens, 13. Essai sur les nationalites, 76. Fate of Armenians, 76. Mission scientifique au Caucase, 19. Note sur les necropoles prehistoriques de l'Armenie, 19. Note sur l'usage du systeme ponderal assyrien dans l'Armenie, 19. Rise and fall of Armenia, 31. Les stations prehistoriques de l'Alagheuz, 19. La Transcaucasie et l'Armenie Cles des Indes, 76. Morgan, J. J. M. de, and J. V. Scheil. La stele de Kel-i-chin, 55. Morgenthau, Henry. Ambassador Morgenthau's story, 39. Morier, James: Journey through Persia, Armenia and Asia Minor, 13. Second journey through Persia, Armenia and Asia Minor, 13. Moritz, Bernhard. Die armenisch-kurdische Frage, 76. Morton, O. T. Mr. James Bryce on Armenian question, 74. Moses of Chorene: Badmoutiun Hahots, 31. Histoire d'Armenie, 31. Mosis Chorenensis Historiae Armeniacae Libri III, 31. Storia, 31. Mouchek Yebiscobos (Seropian): Adanahi chartu yev badaskhanadouneru, 39. Americahai daretsoitse, 1912, 79. Europe's duty to Armenia, 76. Madteos II Izmirlian, 41. Manchestry Hai kaghoutu, 79. Truth about Adana massacres, 39. Mounsey, A. H. Journey through Caucasus, 13. Mourdji, 7. Mourier, J., translator. Contes et legendes, 61. Mseriantz, Levon. Notice sur la phonetique du dialecte armenien de Mouch, 51. Mueller, D. H. Drei neue Inschriften von Van, 55. Mueller, Friedrich: Armeniaca, 51. Die armenischen Handschriften des Klosters von Aryni, 6. Die armenischen Handschriften von Sewast, 6. Beitraege zur Conjugation des armenischen Verbums, 51. Beitraege zur Declination des armenischen Nomens, 51. Beitraege zur Lautlehre der armenischen Sprache, 51. Bemerkungen ueber zwei armenische Keil-Inschriften, 55. Nicht-mesropische Schriftzeichen bei den Armeniern, 51. Ueber die armenische Bearbeitung der "Sieben weisen Meister," 67. Ueber die Stellung des Armenischen im Kreise der indogermanischen Sprachen, 51. Ueber den Ursprung der Vocalzeichen der armenischen Schrift, 51. Zur Geschichte der armenischen Schrift, 51. Zur Wortbildungslehre der armenischen Sprache, 51. Zwei armenische Inschriften aus Galizien, 55. Zwei sprachwissenschaftliche Abhandlungen zur armenischen Grammatik, 51. Mueller-Simonis, Paul, and Henry Hyvernat. Du Caucase au golfe Persique a travers l'Armenie, 13, 32. Munkacsi, Bernhard. Ueber die "uralten armenischen Lehnwoerter" im Tuerkischen, 51. Murad, bey. La force et la faiblesse de la Turquie, 76. Murad, Friedrich. Ararat und Masis, 19. Muravyev, A. N. Gruziya i Armeniya, 32. N N., W., and S. M. Hovannes Aivazovsky, 41. Najib Makhluf. Nubar Pasha, 41. Nalpandian, Mikahel. Yergrakordzoutiunu orbes oughigh janabarh, 43. Natalie, Shahan. Songs of love and hate, 58. La Nation armenienne, 13. National Armenian Relief Committee: Brands from burning, 72. Helping hand series, 7. Save the remnant, 72. Wards of Christendom, 72. Nazarbek, Avetis: Through storm. Pictures of life in Armenia, 42. Zeitun, 39. Neale, J. M. History of Holy Eastern Church, 69. Negelein, G. von. Der armenische Volksglaube, 44. Nerses the Graceful, patriarch of Armenia: Elegie sur la prise d'Edesse par les Musulmans, 58. Preces, 69-70. Nerses of Lambron: Extraits de l'ouvrage intitule Reflexions sur les institutions de l'eglise, 70. Kaghakahin orenk, 45. Nerses, patriarch of Constantinople. Les Armeniens de Turquie, 32. Neumann, C. F.: Memoire sur la vie et les ouvrages de David, 41. Versuch einer Geschichte der armenischen Literatur, 56. Neve, Felix: L'Armenie chretienne et sa litterature, 57. Etude sur Thomas de Medzoph, 32. Expose des guerres de Tamerlan et de Schah-Rokh, 32. L'hymnologie armenienne, 70. New Armenia, 7. Niepage, Martin. Horrors of Aleppo, 39. Nilus Doxapatrius. Taxiz ton Patriarchikon Thronon, 70. Nolde, Eduard, Baron. Reise nach Innerarabien, Kurdistan und Armenien, 14. Norman, C. B. Armenia, 32. Notice de la ville d'Erivan, 14. O Ob Armyanakh, starinnykh poselentzakh Polshi, 79. O'Connor, T. P.: Armenia and her future, 76. Armenia: united and autonomous, 76. Ohanian, Armene. En Armenie, 43. Ormanian, Malachia: Armenian Church, 70. Armenian conversion to Christianity, 70. Church of Armenia, 70. L'eglise armenienne, 70. Unionist tendencies of Armenian Church, 70. O'Shea, J. G. Unhappy Armenia, 76. Oswald, Felix: Armenien, 47. Zur tektonischen Entwicklungsgeschichte des armenischen Hochlandes, 47. Our obligations to Armenia, 76. P Palgrave, W. G. Eastern Christians, 14. Papazian, B. S. Tragedy of Armenia, 32. Parechanian, H. K. Tirahauad khilkin hauadatsial ullalou jampan, 64. Parrot, Friedrich. Journey to Ararat, 14. Pasdermadjian, G. Why Armenia should be free, 76. Patkanian, Raphael: Cradle song, 58. Drei Erzaehlungen, 61. Woe of Araxes, 58. Patkanov, K. P.: Armyanskaya geografiya vii vyeka po r. kh. pripysyvavshayasya Moiseyu Khorenskomu, 14. Bibliograficheski ocherk armyanskoi istoricheskoi literatury, 6. Catalogue de la litterature armenienne, 6. De quelques inscriptions de Van, 55. Essai d'une histoire de la dynastie des Sassanides, 41. Recherches sur la formation de la langue armenienne, 51. Sur l'ecriture cuneiforme armeniaque, 55. Ueber die Stellung der armenischen Sprache im Kreise der Indo-Europaeischen, 51. Patkanov, K. P., and A. H. Sayce. De quelques nouvelles inscriptions cuneiformes, 55. Paton, W. R. Critical notes on Plato's laws, 65. Patrubany, L. von. Zur armenischen Wortforschung, 51. Pavlovitch, Michel: Rossiya i armyanski narod, 79. La Russie et les Armeniens, 32. Payson, Edward. Hokeshah mdadzoutiunk, 67. Peace Congress and Armenian question, 76. Pears, Sir Edwin: Turkey and its people, 14. Turkey and war, 76. Pedersen, Holger: Armenisch und die Nachbarsprachen, 51. Les pronoms demonstratifs de l'ancien armenien, 51. Zur armenischen Sprachgeschichte, 51. Peirce, W. F., and L. F. Peirce. Armenian Church, 70. Petermann, J. H.: Beitraege zu der Geschichte der Kreuzzuege, 41. Brevis linguae Armeniacae grammatica, 52. Grammatica linguae Armeniacae, 52 Litteratura armeniaca, 6. Ueber den Dialect der Armenier von Tiflis, 52. Ueber einige neuere Erscheinungen der armenischen Litteratur, 57. Ueber die Musik der Armenier, 43. Ueber das Verhaeltniss der armenischen Uebersetzung der Briefe des Ignatius, 67. Peterson, Theodore. Turkey and Armenian crisis, 76. Peterson, Wilhelm. Aus Transkaukasien und Armenien, 14. Petite bibliotheque armenienne, 61. Pfeiffer, E. Die Anfaenge der protestantischen Kirche in Armenien, 14. Photios. Der Brief des Photios an Aschot, 64. Pichard, C. E. Essai sur Moise de Khoren, 32. Pichon, Jules. Itineraire de Djoulfa a Roudout-Kale, 14. Pignot, Emile. L'Armenie et la question des nationalites, 76. Pilibbosian, H. M. Kordznagan aroghzapanoutiun, 46. Pinon, Rene: L'Armenie et la capitulation maximaliste, 76. Aux neutres, 76. L'avenir de la Transcaucasie, 76. D'ou peut naitre une Armenie independante? 77. L'independance de l'Armenie, 77. Un plaidoyer turc sur la question des massacres, 77. La resurrection de l'Asie occidentale, 77. La suppression des Armeniens, 39. Pisemski, A. Astrakhanskiye armyane, 79. Pisma iz Armenii, 32. Pitton de Tournefort, Joseph. Relation d'un voyage du Levant, 14. Pocket dictionary of English, Armenian, and Turkish languages, 52. Political papers, 39. Porter, R. K. Travels in Georgia, Persia, Armenia, 14. Portoukalian, M. Armenian girl, 58. Powers, H. G. In Armenian villages, 14. Pratt, A. T. On Armeno-Turkish alphabet, 52. Pressense, F. de. Turks in Armenia, 77. Price, M. P.: Journey through Turkish Armenia, 14. Problem of Asiatic Turkey, 77. War & revolution in Asiatic Russia, 39. Probyn, J. W. Armenia and Lebanon, 77. Proclus, Saint, patriarch of Constantinople. Ein Briefwechsel zwischen Proklos und Sahak, 70. Proschianz, Pertsch. Sako, 61. Q La question armenienne, 77. Quillard, Pierre: L'extermination d'une race, 39. Les nouveaux massacres, 39. R Radde, Gustav: Briefe von G. Radde ueber seine Bereisung von Hoch-Armenien, 14. Die Ebene des Oberen Frat, 14. Karabagh, 14. Vier Vortraege ueber den Kaukasus, 14. Raffi: Bilder aus Persien und Tuerkisch-Armenien, 61. Dzhalaleddin, 61. Jelaleddin, 61. Khent, 61. Lake of Van, 58. Schoen-Vartig, 61. Raffi, Aram: Armenia: its epics, folksongs and mediaeval poetry, 57. Armenian nation, 32. Armenians and Persia, 32. English and Armenians, 32. From London to Armenia, 14. Land of Armenia, 14. Raffi commemoration, 61. Rafiueddin Ahmad. Moslem view of Abdul Hamid and Powers, 77. Ramsay, Sir W. M.: Armenian atrocities, 77. Two massacres in Asia Minor, 39. Rassam, Hormuzd: Armenian difficulty, 77. Armenian question, 77. Asshur, 14. Rawlinson, George: Parthia, 32. Sixth great Oriental monarchy, 32-33. Story of Parthia, 33. Raynolds, G. C. Thrilling experiences in Van, 39. Reclus, Elisee. Asiatic Turkey, 15. Red Cross, United States.--American National Red Cross. Report, 39. Reinach, Theodore. Mithridate Eupator, 33. Reisen im armenischen Hochland, 15. Reisen in Hoch-Armenien, 15. Rey, F. C. Les periples des cotes de Syrie, 15. Ricaut, Paul. Present state of Greek and Armenian churches, 70. Richardson, E. C. Armenia, 6. Richter, Julius. Protestant missions in Turkey and Armenia, 72. Riggs, Elias: Brief grammar of modern Armenian language, 52. Inverted construction of modern Armenian, 52. Rikli, Martin. Natur- und Kulturbilder aus den Kaukasuslaendern und Hocharmenien, 15. Riseis, G. de. Traverso l'Armenia russa, 15. Ritter, Karl. Die Erdkunde im Verhaeltniss zur Natur und zur Geschichte des Menschen, 15. Robert, L. de. Etude philologique sur les inscriptions cuneiformes de l'Armenie, 55. Robert, Ulysse. La chronique d'Armenie, 33. Roberts, Chalmers. Mother of martyrs, 39. Robinson, E. J.: Armenia and Armenians, 33. Case of our ally Armenia, 77. New Armenia, 77. Regeneration of Armenia, 77. Truth about Armenia, 33, 77. Rockwell, W. W.: Armenia. List of books, 6. Deportation of Armenians, 33. Roesler, Emil, and W. Belck. Archaeologische Thaetigkeit im Jahre 1893 in Transkaukasien, 19. Rohrbach, Paul: Armenier und Kurden, 15. Aus Turan und Armenien, 77. Contribution to Armenian question, 77. Deutschland unter den Armeniern, 39. Vom Kaukasus zum Mittelmeer, 15. Rolin-Jacquemyns, Gustave: Actual position of Armenia, 33. Armenia, Armenians and treaties, 33. Armenia under Treaty of Paris, 33. L'Armenie, les Armeniens et les traites, 33. Diplomatic remonstrances, 33. Legal position of Turkish Armenia, 33. Period from 1878 to 1881, 33. Review of consular reports, 33. Rollin, Charles. Badmoutiun Hrovmeagan, 67. Roth, Karl. Armenien und Deutschland, 33. Roussel, Therese. Souvenirs d'une Francaise en Armenie, 15. Rushdooni. Sixth-and-a-half cousin's inheritance, 61. Russell, C. T. Millennial dawn, 67. Russia.--Ministerstvo Inostrannykh Dyel. Sbornik diplomaticheskikh dokumentov. Reformy v Armenii, 33. Russia and Armenia, 33. S S., A. G. General Yeprem Khan, 41. Saad, L. Zwei tuerkische Staedtebilder, 15. Sabrijian, Dimoteos: Deux ans de sejour en Abyssinie, 64. Zwei Jahre in Abyssinien, 64. Safir Efendi. Armenian agitation, 77. Safrastian, A. S.: Armenia, 15. Dashnaksuthiun, 33. Existing position in Armenia, 77. Germany and Armenia, 77. Russia and Armenia, 77. Sahak, patriarch: Armenian canons, 70. Isaaci magnae Armeniae catholici oratio, 70. Narratio de rebus Armeniae, 70. Sancti patris nostri Isaaci magnae Armeniae catholici, oratio, 70. Saint-Martin, J. A.: Analyse d'une tragedie armenienne, 61. Discours sur l'origine et l'histoire des Arsacides, 33. Fragments d'une histoire des Arsacides, 33. Histoire des revolutions de l'Armenie, 33. Memoires historiques et geographiques sur l'Armenie, 33. Notice sur la vie et les ecrits de Moyse de Khoren, 32. Notice sur le voyage litteraire de M. Schulz en Orient, 19. Recherches sur la vie et les aventures de Leon, 30. Salemann, C. Armenien, 6. Salmone, H. A. Real rulers of Turkey, 77. Samuel of Ani: Extrait de la chronographie, 33. Samuelis Presbyteri Aniensis temporum usque ad suam aetatem ratio e libris historicorum summatim collecta, 34. Sandalgian, Joseph: Asorisdaniah eu Barsig sebakir artsanakroutiunk, 55. L'idiome des inscriptions cuneiformes urartiques, 55. Les inscriptions cuneiformes urartiques, 55. Sandwith, Humphry: How Turks rule Armenia, 34. Narrative of siege of Kars, 34. Santini, Felice. La questione armena e gli Armeni in Turchia, 77. Saparian, Hamazasb: Pousapanoutiun, 47. Yergrapanoutiun, 47. Sarghissian, Basile. Grand catalogue des manuscrits armeniens, 6. Sarkisian, H. P. Akatankeghos ev ur Pazmatarian kaghdnikn, 21. Saulcy, L. F. J. C. de. Recherches sur l'ecriture cuneiforme assyrienne, 55. Sayce, A. H.: Cuneiform inscriptions of Van, 55. Deux nouvelles inscriptions vanniques, 55. Fresh contributions to decipherment of Vannic inscriptions, 56. Great inscription of Argistis, 56. Inscription of Menuas, 56. Les inscriptions vanniques d'Armavir, 56. Monolith inscription of Argistis, 56. New inscription of Vannic king Menuas, 56. New Vannic inscription, 56. On cuneiform inscriptions of Van, 56. Sazonov, A. N. Nyeskolko tzyfr ob armyanakh na Kavkazye, 79. Scatcherd, F. R.: Armenia's true interests and sympathies in war, 77. Armenian question, 77. Schaffer, F. X.: Cilicia, 15. Grundzuege des geologischen Baues von Tuerkisch-Armenien, 47. Scheil, J. V.: Inscription vannique de Melasgert, 56. Note sur l'expression vannique "gunusa haubi," 56. Schilder, Siegmund. Eine Zweiglinie der Bagdadbahn nach Suedarmenien, 15. Schlumberger, Gustave. Bulles d'or et sceau, 30. Schmid, J. M., translator. Geschichte des Apostels Thaddaeus und der Jungfrau Sanducht, 65. Schmidt, Erich, and others. Die orientalischen Literaturen, 57. Schreiber, Ellis. Armenian Church, 70. Schroeder, J. J. Hoc est J. J. Schroederi Thesaurus linguae Armenicae, 52. Schrumpf, G. A. On progress of Armenian studies, 57. Schrumpf collection of Armenian books, 6. Schulz, Ed. Memoire sur le lac de Van, 15, 56. Schweiger-Lerchenfeld, A. von: Armenia, 15. Erzerum und Erzingdjan, 15. Secundus, sophist of Athens. Das Leben und die Sentenzen des Philosophen Secundus, 67. Seidlitz, N. von: Pastuchows Besteigung des Alagoes, 15. Pastuchows Besteigung des Ararats, 15. Seklemian, A. G.: Armenian alphabet, 52. Armenian folk-tales, 44. Fisherman's son, 44. Golden maiden, 44. Unseen beauty, 44. Selenoy, G. L., and N. von Seidlitz. Die Verbreitung der Armenier in der asiatischen Tuerkei, 15. Selim III, sultan of Turkey. Translation of imperial berat, 70. Sempad, constable of Armenia: Chronique du royaume de la Petite Armenie, 34. Extrait de la chronique de Sempad, 34. Serpos, G. de. Compendio storico di memorie cronologiche concernenti la religione, 70. Seth, M. J. History of Armenians in India, 79. Settegast, Franz. Armenisches im "Daurel e Beton," 52. Sevasly, Mrs. Marie. Bedros Atamian, 41. Seylaz, Louis. L'ascension de mont Ararat, 15. Shahid Bey, Sadik. Islam, Turkey and Armenia, 77. Shakespeare, William. Andonios ev Gleobadra, 67. Shepard, F. D. Personal experience in Turkish massacres, 40. Shiel, J. Notes on journey from Tabriz through Kurdistan, 15. Shishmanian, Hovsep. Toros Livoni, 62. Shoemaker, M. M. Heart of Orient, 15. Sibilian, Clement: Numismatique armenienne, 20. Ueber 17 unedirte Muenzen, 20. Siebert, W. H.: Armenia and Turkey, 34. Independence for Armenia, 77. Justice of granting autonomy to Armenia, 77. Sieger, Robert: Die Schwankungen der armenischen Seen, 47. Die Schwankungen der hocharmenischen Seen, 47. Sievers, Wilhelm. Asien, 16. Sijalski. Erinnerungen aus Armenien, 16. Situation in Russian Armenia, 40. Slousch, Nahum. Le Caucase, l'Armenie et l'Azerbeidjan, 16. Smith, Eli, and H. G. O. Dwight: Missionary researches in Armenia, 72. Researches, 72. Sobraniye aktov, 34. Societe de Sunie formee a Smyrne, 43. Soret, Frederic. Numismatique de l'Armenie au moyen-age, 20. Southgate, Horatio, bishop. Narrative of tour through Armenia, 16. Speer, R. E. Armenian massacres, 40. Spiegel, Friedrich. Eranische Alterthumskunde, 19. Srapian, Moses, translator. Das Martyrium des hl. Pionius, 65. Stein, Robert. Armenia must have European governor, 77. Stevenson, F. S. Armenia, 77. Story of Armenian refugee, 40. Story of nation's martyrdom, 40. Streck, Maximilian: Armenia, 34. Armenia. Bibliography, 6. Das Gebiet der heutigen Landschaften Armenien, Kurdistan und Westpersien, 16. Strecker, Wilhelm: Beitraege zur Geographie von Hoch-Armenien, 16. Notizen ueber das obere Zab-Ala-Gebiet, 16. Ueber die wahrscheinliche aeltere Form des Wan-Sees, 47. Stride, W. K. Immediate future of Armenia, 77. Stuart, Robert. Ascent of Mount Ararat, 16. Stuart-Browne, D. M. Armenian exhibits, 21. Stubbs, William, bishop of Oxford. Medieval kingdoms of Cyprus and Armenia, 34. Stuermer, Harry. Two war years in Constantinople, 34. Sue, Eugene. Taparagan Heryah, 67. Sukias Somal, Placido. Quadro della storia letteraria di Armenia, 57. Sumpad Purad. Pande pand, 62. Sundukianz, Kapriel: Ruined family, 62. Die ruinirte Familie, 62. Suter, Henry. Notes on journey from Erz-Rum to Trebizond, 16. Svasley, Miran: Anglo-Armenian relations from xii to xiv centuries, 34. Armenia in and before 1878, 34. Armenian question, 77. Sykes, Sir Mark, bart. Caliphs' last heritage, 34. Symonds, A. G. Armenia, 78. T T., A. B. Armenian Christmas, 43, 70. Tasso, Torquato. Yerousaghem azadeal, 67. Tavitian, S. De l' ... (E), ou du positif de l'etre, 52. Taylor, J. G.: Journal of tour in Armenia, 16. Travels in Kurdistan, 16. Tcheraz, Minas: Bedros Tourian, 59. L'eglise armenienne, 70. Homere et les Armeniens, 19. Kamar-Katiba, 42. Les martyrs armeniens devant la conference de La Haye, 40. Notes sur la mythologie armenienne, 44. Nouvelles orientales, 62. L'Orient inedit, 62. Poetes armeniens, 59. Saiat-Nova, 42. Saiat-Nova, sa vie et ses chansons, 42. Vie et poesies de Bedros Tourian, 59. Tchobanian, Archag: Armenia's loyalty to allies, 78. Armenia's lullaby, 59. Armenian nation, 16. Armenian poems, 59. Armenian poetry, 59. Armenian question and Europe, 78. L'Armenie, 16, 34. Epic of Armenia, 59. La femme armenienne, 40. La France et le peuple armenien, 79. Gregory of Narek, 42. Hai Etcher, 59. Lullaby for Mother Armenia, 59. Naghash Hovnathan, 59. People of Armenia, 16, 34. Poemes, 59. Poemes armeniens, 59. La vie et le reve, 62. Telfer, J. B. Armenia and its people, 16. Temple of Muzazir, 19. Ter Israel. Le synaxaire armenien, 70. Ter-Minassiantz, Erwand. Die armenische Kirche in ihren Beziehungen zu den syrischen Kirchen, 71. Terzagian, H. K. Parlamentagan ganonner ev zhoghovavaroutiun, 65. Terzian, Paul, bishop of Tarsus and Adana: Church in Armenia, 73. Religious customs among Armenians, 43. Texier, C. F. M.: Description de l'Armenie, 16. Itineraires en Armenie, 16. Notice sur Erzeroum, 16. Notice geographique sur le Kourdistan, 16. Renseignements archeologiques et geographiques, 16. Teza, Emilio: Cose armene, 34. Il libro dei sette savi nella letteratura armena, 65. Nemesiana, 67. Theorianus: Theoriani disputatio secunda cum Nersete, 71. Theoriani orthodoxi disputatio cum Armeniorum Catholico, 71. Thielmann, M. F. G., Freiherr von: Le Caucase, la Perse et la Turquie d'Asie, 16. Journey in Caucasus, Persia, and Turkey in Asia, 16. Thomas a Kempis. Hamahedevumin Krisdosi, 67. Thopdschian, Hagob: Armenien vor und waehrend der Araberzeit, 35. Die inneren Zustaende von Armenien unter Asot I, 35. Politische und Kirchengeschichte Armeniens, 35. Thoumaian, G.: Armenian diplomat in service of Napoleon, 42. Armenian-Kurdish relations, 35. Armenians in Egypt, 79. Armenians in India, 79. Historical sketch of Russia's relations with Armenia, 35. Hour has struck, 78. Kurds in their relation to Armenia, 35. Last chance, 78. Relations of Armenia with England, 35. Relations of Armenia with England in middle ages, 35. Russia's relations with Armenia, 35. Turkey and Armenia, 78. Thumajan, Johann. Die Geschichte der classisch-armenischen Schriftsprache, 57. Timothy, bishop of Alexandria. Timotheus Aelurus' des Patriarchen von Alexandrien Widerlegung der auf der Synode zu Chalcedon festgesetzten Lehre, 71. Tiryakian, H. Hahyereni zeghdzoumneru, 52. Tonapetian, P.: H. F. B. Lynch and his book, 12. Russian and British policy towards Armenia, 78. Tondini de Quarenghi, C. Notice sur le calendrier liturgique, 71. Torossian, Aram: Armenian poetry, 59. Atom Yarjanian-Siamanto, 59. Torossian, B. R. Self-instructor in English language, 52. Tourian, Bedros: Complaints, 59. Little lake, 59. Wishes for Armenia, 59. Tourian, K. G. Armenian Christmas, 71. Tournebize, Francois: Histoire politique et religieuse de l'Armenie, 35. Leon V, 30. Toynbee, A. J.: Armenian atrocities, 40. De armeniska grymheterna, 40. Las atrocidades en Armenia, 40. "Murderous tyranny of Turks," 40. Position of Armenia, 78. Tozer, H. F. Turkish Armenia, 16. Transmigration des Armeniens d'Aderbeidjan sur le territoire russe, 35. Tristram, H. B. Ornithological notes of journey through Syria ... and southern Armenia, 47. Troshine, Yvan. Bystander's notes of massacre, 40. Trowbridge, T. C. Armenia, 17. Tsutsag hishadagarani Movsisi Zohrabiants artsakhetsvo, 59. Turabian, Hagop. Armenian Social-Democratic Hentchakist party, 35. Turkey and Armenia, 12. Turkey--past and future, 17. Turkish Empire. Salnamah, 43. Tutundjian, Telemaque. Du pacte politique entre l'etat ottoman et les nations non-musulmanes de la Turquie, 35. Two Eastern questions, 78. U Ubicini, J. H. A.: Les Armeniens, 17. De l'etat moral et politique de l'Armenie turque, 35. Empire ottoman, 35. Upham, T. C. Darerk imatsagan pilisopayoutian, 67. Upton, E. W. Can Armenia be kept alive as a nation? 78. Ussher, C. D.: American physician in Turkey, 17. Armenian atrocities and Jihad, 40. Ussher, John. Journey from London to Persepolis, 17. V Vahram of Edessa: Chronique rimee des rois de la Petite Armenie, 35. Chronique du royaume armenien de la Cilicie, 35. Vahram's Chronicle of Armenian Kingdom in Cilicia, 35. Varandian, Mikael: Armenia and Armenian question, 78. Armenian aptitudes, 43. L'Armenie et la question armenienne, 78. Varaztad, Puzant. Armenian question, 78. Vark nahabedats ev markareits, 65. Vartabedoutiun krisdonagan usd Haiots, 67. Vartan the Great: Choix de fables, 65. Extrait de l'histoire universelle, 41. Extraits du livre intitule Solutions de passages de l'Ecriture Sainte, 65. Varteresian, Hapet. Mer poghoknern ou tashnagtzoutean tirku anonts hanteb, 65. Vartooguian, A. P. Armenia's ordeal, 35. Varzhabedian, M. A. Veneragan akhder ev abaka Hay serountu, 46. Vecchi, F. de. Escursione lungo il teatro della guerra, 17. Verite sur le mouvement revolutionnaire armenien, 35. Vernes, Maurice. L'avenir de l'Armenie, 78. Veselovski, Yuri: Armyanekaya poeziya 19 vyeka i eya proiskhozhdeniye, 57. Dyeti obezdolennago kraya, 40. K kharakteristikye novoi armyanskoi literatury, 57. Literaturnoye tvorchestvo turetzkikh armyan, 57. Veselovski, Yuri, and M. Berberian, editors. Armyanskiye belletristy sbornik, 62. Vetter, Paul. Das Buch Tobias, 65. Veyssiere de la Croze, Mathurin. Histoire du christianisme d'Ethiopie et d'Armenie, 71. Vida de S. Gregorio, 71. Das Vilayet Erzerum, 43. Villari, Luigi: Anarchy in Caucasus, 78. Armenians and Tartars, 35. Armeno-Tartar hostilities, 35. Clergy at Etchmiadzin, 71. Fire and sword in Caucasus, 17, 35. Land of Ararat, 17. Russia and Armenians, 35. Russian bureaucracy and Armenians, 36. Visit to Etchmiadzin, 71. Virchow, Rudolf: Entdeckungen in Armenien, 19. Forschungsreise unserer armenischen Expedition, 19. Ueber die armenische Expedition Belck-Lehmann, 20. Ueber den Ursprung der Bronzecultur, 20. Virgil: B. Virkileah Maroni Yeneagan, 67. Mshagagank, 67. Visit to Mount Ararat, 17. Vittoria Aganoor Pompily, 42. Vivien de Saint Martin, Louis. Note sur le site d'Armavir, 17. Vizetelly, Edward. Winter ride in Armenia, 17. Vogel, Charles, and A. Coumryantz. Le peuple qui souffre; l'Armenie, 36. La Voix de l'Armenie, 7. Volland. Beitraege zur Ethnographie der Bewohner von Armenien, 17. Vollmer, Philipp. Armenian Church, 71. Von Trapezunt nach Erzerum, 17. Vorlaeufiger Bericht ueber die im Jahre 1875 ausgefuehrten Reisen in Kaukasien, 17. Vorontzov-Dashkov, I. I. Iz zapisok, 78. Vosgian, G. A. Artseren parkirk, 52. Voulzie, G. A travers l'Armenie russe, 9. Vrthanes Kherthol. Die Abhandlung "Gegen die Bilderstuermer," 71. Vzyatiye Arzeruma (pisma iz Aremnii), 36. W Wachter, Wilhelm. Die kaukasisch-armenische Erdbebenzone, 47. Wagner, Moriz: Aus dem Tagebuch eines deutschen Naturforschers in Armenien, 47. Beitraege zur Kenntniss der Naturverhaeltnisse, 47. Mittheilungen eines deutschen Reisenden aus dem russischen Armenien, 17. Wakidi, Abu 'Abd Allah Muhammad ibn 'Umar al-. Geschichte der Eroberung von Mesopotamien und Armenien, 36. Wardrop, Marjory, and J. O. Wardrop. Life of St. Nino, 42. Wartabet, Zaven. Tebi Kegharvesti haireniku, 21. Watson, William. Purple East, 78. West, M. A. Romance of missions, 73. Westarp, E. J., Graf von: Routenaufnahmen in Armenien, 17. Unter Halbmond und Sonne, 17. Wheeler, A. A. Russians in Armenia, 36. Wheeler, E. P. Armenian independence, 78. White, G. E. Morning light in Asia Minor, 73. Whiting, G. B. Jrak hokvoh, 67. Who are Armenians? 17. Wickering, Armand de. Eznig de Gog'ph, 65. Wilbraham, Richard. Travels in Trans-Caucasian provinces of Russia, 17. Wilhelm, Eugene. Analogies in Iranian and Armenian folklore, 45. Williams, Aneurin. Armenia: is it the end? 78. Williams, Charles. Armenian campaign, 36. Williams, W. L.: Ancient kingdom of greater Armenia, 36. Armenia: past and present, 36, 71. Armenian aspirations, 78. Armenian Church, 71. Armenian Church and schism in Christendom, 71. Kingdom of Lesser Armenia, 36. Modern problem, 78. Struggle of Armenian Church, 71. Under heel of Turk, 36. Wilson, S. G. Armenian Church in its relation to Russian government, 71. Windischmann, F. H. H. Die Grundlage des Armenischen im arischen Sprachstamme, 52. Wingate, Mrs. J. S.: Armenian folk-tales, 45. Armenian stories, 45. Wlislocki, H. von. Maerchen und Sagen der Bukowinaer und Siebenbuerger Armenier, 62. Wuensch, Josef: Meine Reise in Armenien, 17. Die Quelle des westlichen Tigrisarmes, 17. Wuensch, Josef, and D. H. Mueller. Die Keil-Inschrift von Aschrut-Darga, 56. Y Yarjanian-Siamanto, Atom: Song of knight, 59. Starving, 59. Yeran, E. A.: Armenian-English conversation illustrated, 52. Zhoghovrtahin yerkaran, 59. Yeremian, Simeon: Azkahin temker kraked Hayer, 42. Nor gentanapanoutiun ev martagazmoutiun badmagan ev ngarakragan, 47. Nor hankapanoutiun ngarakragan ev badmagan, 47. Yergat, Tigran. Poete mourant, 59. Yeshu' bar Shushan. Das Sendschreiben des Patriarchen Barschuschan an den Catholicus der Armenier, 71. Yorke, V. W. Journey in valley of upper Euphrates, 17. Young, George. Communautes des Armeniens gregoriens, 71. Z Zahn, G. W. von. Die Stellung Armeniens im Gebirgsbau von Vorderasien, 47. Zanolli, Almo: Osservazioni sulla traduzione armena, 67. Singolare accezione del vocabolo armeno "tirakan," 52. Studio sul raddoppiamento allitterazione e ripetizione nell' armeno antico, 52. Zartarian, Roupen: Clarte nocturne, 62. How death came to earth, 45. Zarzecki, S. La question kurdo-armenienne, 78. Zavak: Armenia: chronological treatise, 36. Armenia: a monograph, 36. Armenian Church music, 71. Armenian proverbs, 65. Earliest Armenian printing press, 57. Zeitschrift fuer armenische Philologie, 52. Zenob of Klag. Histoire de Daron, 36. Zimmerer, H. Armenien, 17. Zouche (14. baron), Robert Curzon. Armenia, 17. Zposaran mangants, 52. End of Project Gutenberg's Armenia and the Armenians, by Ida A. Pratt *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ARMENIA AND THE ARMENIANS *** ***** This file should be named 52371.txt or 52371.zip ***** This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: http://www.gutenberg.org/5/2/3/7/52371/ Produced by Jeroen Hellingman and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net/ for Project Gutenberg (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.) Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will be renamed. Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license, especially commercial redistribution. START: FULL LICENSE THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at www.gutenberg.org/license. Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the United States and you are located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United States. 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, copied or distributed: This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook. 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project Gutenberg-tm License. 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided that * You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." * You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm works. * You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of receipt of the work. * You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. 1.F. 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE. 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further opportunities to fix the problem. 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from people in all walks of life. Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact For additional contact information: Dr. Gregory B. Newby Chief Executive and Director gbnewby@pglaf.org Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with the IRS. The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who approach us with offers to donate. International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: www.gutenberg.org This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.